Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n act_n change_v great_a 45 3 2.1554 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A60254 The herbal of divinity, or The dead arising from the dust to confute the hereticks of these times that say, there is no resurrection : in several sermons / by John Simpson ... Simpson, John. 1659 (1659) Wing S3816; ESTC R38922 212,064 462

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

of_o no_o draw_v but_o you_o see_v that_o god_n must_v compel_v we_o to_o come_v in_o to_o jesus_n or_o else_o we_o will_v never_o come_v in_o unto_o he_o nor_o submit_v unto_o his_o will_n i_o will_v not_o here_o be_v mistake_v i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o when_o a_o man_n do_v take_v christ_n that_o he_o be_v unwilling_a to_o take_v he_o but_o he_o receive_v he_o willing_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o natural_a will_n that_o a_o man_n be_v make_v willing_a but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o grace_n exit_fw-la nolentibus_fw-la volentes_fw-la facit_fw-la god_n make_v we_o who_o be_v unwilling_a to_o entertain_v his_o son_n by_o nature_n willing_a to_o entertain_v he_o by_o grace_n and_o the_o will_v act_v by_o the_o strength_n of_o supernatural_a grace_n do_v act_n in_o a_o contrary_a way_n to_o itself_o when_o it_o act_v in_o the_o strength_n of_o corrupt_a nature_n by_o which_o it_o be_v plain_o prove_v that_o the_o will_n of_o a_o natural_a man_n be_v insufficient_a of_o itself_o to_o bring_v about_o the_o salvation_n of_o a_o natural_a man_n we_o be_v change_v into_o the_o image_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n 2_o cor._n 3.18_o from_o whence_o one_o do_v draw_v this_o rational_a conclusion_n that_o if_o we_o be_v change_v by_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o then_o it_o be_v not_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o free_a will_n simo_n a_o domini_fw-la spiritu_fw-la jam_fw-la non_fw-la a_o libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la and_o we_o may_v draw_v the_o same_o conclusion_n from_o the_o word_n of_o paul_n phil._n 2.13_o where_o he_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v god_n that_o work_v in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v of_o his_o own_o good_a pleasure_n if_o god_n do_v work_v in_o we_o to_o will_v what_o be_v good_a than_o we_o do_v not_o work_v it_o in_o ourselves_o by_o which_o it_o be_v clear_o demonstrate_v that_o if_o faith_n be_v look_v upon_o as_o a_o work_n in_o the_o will_n by_o which_o it_o be_v make_v willing_a to_o receive_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n for_o justification_n that_o then_o faith_n can_v be_v look_v upon_o as_o from_o ourselves_o but_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n a_o second_o argument_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o may_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o consider_v the_o disability_n of_o man_n already_o convert_v to_o do_v any_o good_a of_o themselves_o and_o thus_o i_o frame_v my_o argument_n if_o man_n already_o convert_v be_v not_o able_a to_o think_v a_o good_a thought_n or_o to_o put_v forth_o one_o act_n of_o faith_n of_o themselves_o then_o man_n unconvert_v be_v not_o able_a to_o believe_v of_o themselves_o before_o conversion_n but_o man_n already_o convert_v be_v not_o able_a to_o think_v one_o good_a thought_n or_o to_o put_v forth_o one_o act_n of_o faith_n of_o themselves_o therefore_o unconvert_v man_n be_v not_o able_a to_o believe_v of_o themselves_o there_o be_v that_o strength_n in_o the_o first_o proposition_n that_o i_o suppose_v no_o man_n pretend_v to_o be_v a_o scholar_n in_o the_o school_n of_o the_o spirit_n will_v question_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o for_o shall_v a_o man_n question_v it_o he_o shall_v by_o his_o question_n of_o it_o attribute_v a_o great_a strength_n to_o unconvert_v then_o convert_v man_n which_o be_v such_o a_o absurdity_n in_o divinity_n that_o i_o think_v no_o spiritual_a man_n will_v be_v guilty_a of_o it_o and_o for_o the_o minor_a or_o second_o proposition_n it_o be_v back_v with_o such_o plain_a authority_n of_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o any_o man_n to_o deny_v it_o how_o plain_o do_v paul_n deliver_v self_n in_o this_o point_n 2_o cor._n 3.5_o where_o speak_v of_o saint_n he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v not_o sufficient_a of_o ourselves_o to_o think_v any_o thing_n as_o of_o ourselves_o but_o our_o sufficiecy_n be_v of_o god_n what_o spiritual_a act_n be_v more_o easy_a then_o to_o think_v a_o good_a thought_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o think_v well_o then_o to_o speak_v well_o or_o do_v well_o we_o often_o think_v good_a thought_n that_o never_o come_v out_o upon_o the_o tongue_n or_o appear_v in_o the_o action_n yet_o holy_a paul_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o profess_v that_o the_o best_a of_o we_o all_o can_v think_v any_o thing_n as_o of_o ourselves_o which_o may_v be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o that_o which_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o proposition_n where_o we_o say_v that_o he_o can_v put_v forth_o one_o act_n of_o faith_n in_o believe_v our_o spirit_n be_v place_v and_o fix_v upon_o god_n and_o we_o be_v fill_v with_o high_a thought_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o his_o son_n to_o his_o glory_n and_o therefore_o if_o we_o can_v think_v well_o certain_o we_o can_v believe_v well_o and_o that_o we_o can_v believe_v of_o ourselves_o after_o we_o do_v believe_v will_v be_v evident_a by_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o apostle_n luke_n 17.5_o lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n what_o necessity_n be_v there_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v pray_v to_o their_o mr._n for_o the_o increase_n of_o their_o faith_n if_o by_o their_o own_o strength_n they_o can_v have_v believe_v when_o they_o have_v please_v and_o thus_o i_o have_v at_o once_o both_o prove_v my_o argument_n and_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n that_o true_a faith_n be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o this_o argument_n be_v a_fw-fr majore_fw-la ad_fw-la minus_fw-la as_o we_o speak_v in_o logic_n from_o the_o great_a to_o the_o less_o if_o the_o great_a can_v do_v nothing_o the_o less_o can_v if_o convert_a man_n be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o towards_o this_o excellent_a work_n of_o faith_n then_o unconvert_v man_n be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o man_n who_o have_v a_o life_n in_o christ_n can_v do_v nothing_o of_o themselves_o therefore_o such_o who_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n and_o trespass_n can_v do_v nothing_o of_o themselves_o but_o god_n must_v do_v all_o in_o we_o by_o his_o grace_n the_o three_o argument_n may_v be_v draw_v from_o this_o consideration_n that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o reason_n or_o understanding_n of_o man_n which_o may_v further_o he_o in_o this_o work_n of_o faith_n than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o those_o man_n who_o be_v the_o most_o acute_a man_n the_o most_o learned_a man_n the_o wise_a and_o most_o rational_a man_n will_v prove_v the_o best_a christian_n and_o the_o most_o faithful_a man_n but_o we_o find_v it_o quite_o contrary_a there_o be_v none_o common_o more_o ignorant_a of_o christ_n than_o they_o who_o be_v most_o learned_a the_o world_n wiseman_n be_v god_n fool_n it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o prove_v this_o by_o run_v over_o the_o several_a age_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v the_o complaint_n of_o a_o good_a man_n long_o since_o the_o unlearned_a say_v he_o do_v arise_v and_o take_v heaven_n by_o force_n while_o we_o learn_v man_n be_v cast_v into_o hell_n surgunt_fw-la indocti_fw-la &_o rapiunt_fw-la coelum_fw-la dum_fw-la nos_fw-la docti_fw-la detrudimur_fw-la ad_fw-la gehennam_fw-la but_o i_o shall_v confine_v myself_o to_o scripture_n this_o be_v prove_v 1_o cor._n 1.26_o 27._o you_o see_v your_o call_a brethren_n how_o that_o not_o many_o wise_a man_n after_o the_o flesh_n not_o many_o mighty_a not_o many_o noble_a be_v call_v but_o god_n have_v choose_v the_o foolish_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wise_a and_o the_o weak_a thing_n of_o the_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v mighty_a the_o wise_a man_n and_o great_a man_n of_o the_o world_n have_v not_o general_o embrace_v christ_n but_o rather_o the_o world_n fool_n have_v be_v make_v wise_a by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o the_o learned_a pharisee_n do_v reproach_n christ_n and_o his_o doctrine_n with_o this_o joh._n 7.48_o have_v any_o of_o the_o ruler_n or_o pharisee_n believe_v on_o he_o but_o this_o people_n who_o know_v not_o the_o law_n be_v curse_v they_o look_v upon_o his_o follower_n as_o a_o curse_a company_n of_o ignorant_a people_n unacquainted_a with_o the_o law_n which_o they_o teach_v for_o justification_n and_o suppose_v that_o the_o ruler_n and_o pharisee_n have_v so_o much_o wit_n wisdom_n and_o learning_n that_o they_o will_v give_v no_o credit_n to_o his_o doctrine_n therefore_o see_v those_o who_o be_v most_o learned_a wise_a and_o acute_a by_o rational_a part_n gift_n and_o ability_n be_v common_o most_o averse_a and_o opposite_a to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v not_o by_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o reason_n or_o understanding_n of_o man_n by_o which_o one_o man_n be_v make_v more_o capable_a of_o faith_n then_o any_o other_o man_n but_o god_n give_v the_o gift_n of_o faith_n free_o to_o who_o he_o please_v the_o four_o may_v be_v draw_v from_o
so_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n we_o be_v make_v happy_a bring_v from_o a_o curse_a condition_n into_o a_o blissful_a condition_n from_o horror_n to_o joy_n from_o hell_n to_o heaven_n from_o the_o state_n of_o nature_n to_o the_o state_n of_o glory_n only_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n it_o be_v only_o by_o grace_n that_o we_o be_v what_o we_o be_v by_o grace_n our_o sin_n be_v pardon_v by_o grace_n we_o have_v a_o inheritance_n with_o the_o saint_n by_o grace_n we_o be_v the_o high_a bear_v son_n of_o the_o great_a king_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n by_o grace_n we_o be_v bless_v and_o load_v with_o all_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a blessing_n in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o eternal_a felicity_n happiness_n and_o blissfulnesse_n thus_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n and_o by_o grace_n alone_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_n do_v speak_v excellent_o to_o this_o purpose_n nemo_n se_fw-la palpet_fw-la de_fw-la svo_fw-la satanas_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-fr deo_fw-la beatus_fw-la est_fw-la quid_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la de_fw-fr svo_fw-la nisi_fw-la peccatum_fw-la suum_fw-la let_v no_o man_n boast_v of_o himself_o for_o of_o a_o man_n self_n he_o be_v a_o devil_n by_o god_n a_o man_n be_v make_v happy_a what_o be_v a_o man_n of_o himself_o but_o sin_n you_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n again_o salvation_n in_o scripture_n be_v take_v for_o salvation_n before_o god_n in_o the_o court_n of_o heaven_n and_o it_o be_v take_v for_o the_o save_n of_o a_o party_n in_o his_o own_o spirit_n and_o conscience_n if_o we_o take_v it_o in_o the_o first_o sense_n a_o man_n be_v save_v in_o the_o court_n of_o heaven_n only_o by_o grace_n what_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o the_o accuse_a mouth_n of_o the_o law_n be_v stop_v no_o bill_n no_o enditement_n can_v be_v bring_v against_o the_o elect_a in_o the_o court_n of_o heaven_n be_v it_o not_o this_o because_o god_n in_o his_o grace_n justifi_v they_o this_o be_v the_o apostle_n argument_n rom._n 8.33_o who_o shall_v lay_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o god_n elect_n it_o be_v god_n that_o justifi_v they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o can_v implead_v or_o bring_v a_o action_n against_o they_o before_o god_n for_o break_v his_o law_n he_o that_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o elect_n be_v their_o justifier_n grace_n have_v cast_v out_o of_o heaven_n the_o accuser_n of_o the_o brethren_n which_o accuse_v they_o before_o god_n night_n and_o day_n rev._n 12.10_o the_o accuser_n can_v bring_v no_o enditement_n complaint_n or_o accusation_n against_o the_o saint_n there_o there_o be_v no_o sin_n in_o our_o conscience_n that_o can_v be_v hear_v to_o accuse_v we_o in_o heaven_n because_o there_o be_v grace_n for_o our_o justification_n god_n behold_v his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n before_o his_o eve_n upon_o who_o he_o have_v lay_v all_o our_o sin_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n do_v with_o powerful_a and_o undeniable_a argument_n plead_v for_o those_o for_o who_o it_o be_v shed_v the_o stray_a and_o straggle_a sheep_n which_o be_v within_o the_o reach_n of_o god_n eternal_a grace_n can_v be_v condemn_v because_o the_o good_a shepherd_n have_v give_v his_o life_n for_o the_o sheep_n joh._n 10.11_o god_n know_v that_o he_o have_v receive_v satisfaction_n before_o hand_n for_o their_o sin_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n who_o be_v not_o now_o to_o pay_v any_o thing_n but_o have_v already_o make_v payment_n for_o all_o their_o debt_n and_o be_v become_v the_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v seal_v in_o his_o own_o blood_n under_o which_o covenant_n upon_o this_o consideration_n there_o can_v be_v no_o remembrance_n of_o sin_n heb._n 10.14_o god_n behold_v his_o elect_n in_o their_o propitiation_n and_o always_o hear_v the_o sweet_a voice_n of_o their_o wrath-appeasing_a advocate_n make_v a_o heavenly_a melody_n in_o his_o ear_n and_o always_o behold_v our_o happiness_n before_o himself_o in_o heaven_n lie_v wrap_v up_o in_o his_o own_o grace_n do_v acquaint_v we_o in_o his_o word_n of_o truth_n that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n second_o if_o we_o take_v salvation_n in_o the_o other_o sense_n for_o salvation_n in_o our_o spirit_n and_o conscience_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n there_o can_v be_v no_o salvation_n bring_v home_o to_o our_o heart_n but_o by_o the_o sight_n of_o grace_n if_o we_o have_v the_o sanctification_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n which_o have_v live_v since_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n and_o shall_v look_v upon_o it_o all_o as_o we_o to_o give_v comfort_n to_o our_o soul_n and_o to_o assure_v we_o that_o we_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n and_o shall_v not_o look_v above_o it_o to_o behold_v god_n grace_n and_o our_o sanctification_n in_o it_o and_o from_o it_o it_o will_v not_o give_v we_o any_o solid_a comfort_n or_o assurance_n of_o our_o salvation_n nothing_o can_v shine_v in_o the_o heart_n to_o give_v it_o any_o comfort_n but_o what_o do_v shine_v and_o give_v light_a in_o the_o light_n and_o beam_n of_o this_o grace_n we_o never_o come_v to_o see_v ourselves_o in_o a_o condition_n of_o safety_n till_o we_o see_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n look_v unto_o i_o and_o be_v save_v all_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o i_o be_o god_n and_o there_o be_v none_o else_o isaiah_n 45.22_o none_o but_o god_n can_v save_v we_o and_o nothing_o but_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n can_v bring_v salvation_n to_o we_o still_o we_o have_v some_o objection_n or_o other_o against_o salvation_n and_o justification_n till_o god_n silence_n all_o objection_n by_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o own_o grace_n there_o be_v that_o only_a in_o god_n and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n that_o will_v silence_v all_o objection_n if_o our_o conscience_n fly_v in_o our_o face_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o have_v commit_v many_o thousand_o of_o sin_n more_o than_o we_o can_v reckon_v or_o number_v up_o yet_o when_o god_n give_v we_o a_o sight_n of_o himself_o his_o son_n and_o grace_n the_o mouth_n of_o conscience_n be_v stop_v and_o we_o see_v all_o our_o sin_n swallow_v up_o in_o his_o love_n show_v we_o the_o father_n and_o it_o suffice_v we_o say_v philip._n joh._n 14.8_o when_o god_n show_v we_o himself_o our_o spirit_n be_v at_o rest_n when_o grace_n be_v discover_v and_o god_n light_n do_v shine_v upon_o the_o soul_n sin_n death_n &_o damnation_n can_v terrify_v the_o soul_n but_o they_o be_v fill_v with_o a_o spirit_n of_o joy_n in_o believe_v their_o free_a justification_n who_o before_o through_o fear_n of_o death_n be_v subject_a to_o bondage_n heb._n 2.15_o grace_n appear_v great_a and_o strong_a to_o bring_v salvation_n than_o sin_n powerful_a to_o bring_v damnation_n our_o sin_n &_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n be_v the_o act_n of_o creature_n be_v finite_a but_o grace_n that_o justifi_v we_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o a_o infinite_a god_n and_o be_v boundless_a and_o infinite_a man_n be_v unassure_v of_o their_o salvation_n unless_o this_o grace_n be_v present_v to_o the_o eye_n of_o their_o spirit_n and_o man_n and_o devil_n can_v prevail_v against_o we_o to_o enforce_v we_o to_o question_v our_o justification_n and_o salvation_n when_o we_o look_v upon_o it_o that_o peace_n which_o the_o world_n can_v take_v from_o we_o nor_o give_v unto_o we_o that_o joy_n which_o neither_o the_o law_n nor_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n can_v convey_v unto_o we_o nor_o bereave_v we_o off_o that_o salvation_n which_o damn_a fiend_n can_v never_o rob_v we_o of_o be_v communicate_v to_o we_o by_o the_o behold_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o soul_n when_o it_o have_v a_o sight_n of_o this_o grace_n it_o stand_v with_o boldness_n at_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n and_o though_o it_o feel_v hellish_a sin_n in_o itself_o yet_o it_o be_v able_a to_o dispute_v with_o all_o the_o devil_n in_o hell_n and_o to_o maintain_v the_o freeness_n fullness_n and_o completeness_n of_o its_o own_o justification_n from_o all_o sin_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o jesus_n christ_n if_o the_o devil_n shall_v then_o suggest_v this_o to_o a_o man_n that_o he_o be_v a_o sinner_n the_o believe_a soul_n will_v make_v this_o answer_n it_o be_v true_a i_o be_o a_o sinner_n but_o i_o be_o not_o terrify_v to_o desperation_n because_o i_o be_o ungodly_a but_o i_o rejoice_v in_o this_o that_o god_n justifi_v the_o ungodly_a by_o his_o grace_n rom._n 4.5_o if_o the_o devil_n shall_v reply_v but_o thou_o be_v a_o great_a sinner_n and_o there_o be_v a_o great_a damnation_n the_o believe_a soul_n will_v return_v i_o be_o not_o torment_v by_o the_o great_a damnation_n prepare_v for_o great_a sinner_n but_o
indulgence_n be_v our_o righteousness_n thus_o the_o psalmist_n do_v describe_v the_o bless_a man_n psal_n 32._o bless_a be_v the_o man_n who_o iniquity_n be_v paraon_v and_o who_o sin_n be_v cover_v hierome_n do_v sweet_o paraphraseed_n upon_o those_o word_n quod_fw-la tegitur_fw-la non_fw-la videtur_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la videtur_fw-la non_fw-la imputatur_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la imputatur_fw-la non_fw-la punietur_fw-la that_o which_o be_v cover_v be_v not_o see_v that_o which_o be_v not_o see_v be_v not_o impute_v that_o which_o be_v not_o impute_v shall_v not_o be_v punish_v but_o by_o what_o be_v it_o that_o man_n behold_v himself_o in_o this_o happiness_n it_o be_v only_o by_o believe_v and_o therefore_o we_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n we_o can_v see_v a_o nonimputation_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o a_o act_n of_o believe_a by_o which_o we_o be_v assure_v that_o it_o shall_v go_v well_o with_o our_o soul_n to_o all_o eternity_n and_o the_o great_a controversy_n be_v decide_v and_o determine_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o man_n whether_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v or_o whether_o he_o shall_v be_v damn_v no_o other_o foundation_n can_v be_v lay_v than_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n 1_o cor._n 3.11_o and_o we_o can_v see_v this_o foundation_n that_o we_o may_v be_v build_v upon_o it_o but_o by_o believe_v moses_n by_o faith_n see_v he_o that_o be_v invisible_a abraham_n by_o faith_n see_v the_o day_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v glad_a as_o by_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o body_n we_o see_v material_a object_n so_o by_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n we_o see_v spiritual_a object_n the_o philosopher_n say_v that_o prudence_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o eye_n of_o the_o moral_a man_n so_o faith_n be_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o spiritual_a man_n by_o which_o alone_a god_n and_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n be_v behold_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d justin_n martyr_n the_o sun_n be_v not_o change_v when_o the_o blind_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n that_o never_o see_v before_o receive_v his_o sight_n and_o behold_v it_o it_o be_v the_o same_o before_o and_o after_o his_o blindness_n so_o jesus_n christ_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n be_v the_o same_o yesterday_o and_o to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o in_o himself_o and_o unchangeable_a in_o his_o love_n in_o reference_n unto_o we_o the_o change_n be_v only_o in_o we_o by_o faith_n who_o now_o we_o see_v though_o former_o we_o behold_v not_o his_o beauty_n and_o because_o the_o righteousness_n and_o salvation_n of_o god_n be_v reveal_v by_o faith_n rom._n 1.17_o therefore_o we_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n five_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n through_o a_o work_n of_o believe_a because_o if_o it_o be_v not_o only_o in_o a_o act_n of_o believe_a the_o people_n of_o god_n can_v not_o have_v that_o firm_a constant_a and_o unquestionable_a assurance_n of_o their_o salvation_n which_o now_o they_o enjoy_v in_o a_o way_n of_o believe_a when_o a_o man_n be_v to_o go_v unto_o a_o place_n by_o many_o several_a way_n which_o be_v not_o find_v out_o without_o some_o difficulty_n he_o do_v often_o doubt_v whether_o he_o be_v in_o the_o right_a way_n or_o whether_o he_o be_v out_o of_o his_o way_n but_o when_o he_o be_v to_o go_v in_o one_o plain_a way_n he_o be_v confident_a that_o he_o be_v not_o out_o of_o his_o way_n so_o when_o a_o man_n go_v by_o the_o way_n of_o the_o law_n and_o work_n for_o justification_n he_o be_v in_o doubt_n whether_o he_o be_v in_o his_o right_a way_n for_o justification_n the_o law_n point_v out_o many_o way_n and_o require_v many_o duty_n of_o he_o that_o will_v be_v justify_v under_o it_o but_o the_o gospel_n point_v only_o at_o christ_n and_o faith_n in_o he_o for_o justification_n so_o that_o those_o who_o walk_v in_o this_o way_n for_o justification_n be_v confident_a that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_a way_n the_o apostle_n do_v lay_v down_o this_o plain_o rom._n 4.16_o where_o he_o say_v it_o be_v by_o grace_n and_o that_o by_o faith_n to_o the_o end_n the_o promise_n may_v be_v sure_a to_o all_o the_o seed_n not_o to_o that_o only_a which_o be_v of_o the_o law_n but_o to_o that_o that_o be_v of_o the_o faith_n of_o abraham_n the_o father_n of_o we_o all_o god_n have_v not_o make_v the_o promise_n of_o salvation_n to_o the_o seed_n under_o the_o law_n or_o that_o do_v any_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o he_o have_v make_v the_o promise_n to_o be_v gracious_a to_o poor_a sinner_n in_o believe_v without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n to_o the_o end_n the_o promise_n may_v be_v sure_a if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o thing_n else_o require_v beside_o faith_n the_o soul_n will_v be_v always_o restless_a and_o unsatisfied_a if_o god_n shall_v tie_v justification_n to_o work_n man_n will_v be_v unsatisfied_a because_o they_o will_v doubt_v whether_o some_o work_n be_v not_o undo_v and_o then_o they_o will_v doubt_v of_o their_o justification_n therefore_o god_n have_v not_o promise_v justification_n to_o any_o man_n who_o do_v good_a work_n or_o submitt_v to_o any_o outward_a ordinance_n but_o only_o unto_o he_o who_o close_v with_o his_o grace_n in_o a_o pure_a act_n of_o believe_a for_o god_n know_v that_o so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n join_v with_o faith_n for_o justification_n we_o shall_v be_v ready_a to_o question_v our_o justification_n we_o may_v observe_v that_o such_o professor_n who_o be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o the_o gospel_n be_v unsettle_a in_o their_o spirit_n when_o they_o doubt_v which_o be_v the_o true_a government_n or_o external_a ordinance_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n if_o they_o doubt_v whether_o they_o be_v baptize_v in_o a_o right_a way_n or_o manner_n they_o doubt_v whether_o they_o be_v justify_v their_o comfort_n and_o assurance_n do_v vanish_v away_o when_o they_o be_v not_o full_o assure_v that_o they_o know_v and_o be_v obedient_a unto_o all_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o cause_n of_o this_o legallnesse_n in_o their_o spirit_n be_v because_o they_o do_v not_o see_v salvation_n firm_o settle_v upon_o he_o that_o believe_v the_o spiritual_a man_n behold_v justife_v grace_n in_o believe_v without_o his_o obedience_n to_o command_n for_o external_a worship_n and_o good_a work_n and_o do_v live_v joyful_o and_o comfortable_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o justification_n though_o he_o know_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o he_o may_v be_v ignorant_a of_o many_o thing_n which_o other_o christian_n may_v have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o and_o in_o these_o day_n of_o darkness_n contention_n confusion_n and_o disorder_n what_o man_n can_v have_v solid_a and_o last_a joy_n who_o be_v ignorant_a of_o free_a grace_n for_o justification_n if_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o assurance_n of_o justification_n to_o know_v whether_o the_o episcopal_a presbyterial_a or_o independent_a government_n be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n whether_o sprinkle_v of_o child_n or_o dip_v of_o profess_v believer_n be_v the_o institution_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o labyrinth_n of_o the_o controversy_n of_o our_o time_n how_o few_o will_v attain_v to_o a_o assurance_n of_o their_o justification_n how_o will_v poor_a creature_n be_v perplex_v and_o disquiet_v in_o their_o conscience_n not_o certain_o know_v in_o which_o of_o these_o way_n they_o shall_v walk_v for_o their_o justification_n and_o salvation_n but_o that_o the_o promise_n may_v be_v sure_a to_o all_o the_o seed_n rom._n 4.16_o to_o those_o who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n as_o well_o as_o to_o those_o who_o live_v in_o these_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n salvation_n be_v promise_v not_o to_o worker_n but_o believer_n to_o all_o true_a believer_n in_o all_o age_n and_o place_n to_o we_o who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o babylonish_n apostasy_n as_o well_o as_o to_o those_o who_o be_v hearer_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o member_n of_o those_o congregation_n which_o be_v gather_v and_o govern_v by_o they_o six_o by_o faith_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n be_v apply_v unto_o we_o and_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o it_o as_o the_o spiritual_a instrument_n form_v by_o god_n in_o the_o spirit_n for_o the_o application_n of_o christ_n benefit_n to_o our_o conscience_n a_o man_n that_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n look_v upon_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n do_v behold_v himself_o purge_v purify_a and_o sanctify_v in_o his_o flesh_n by_o it_o heb._n 9.13_o so_o a_o sinner_n look_v upon_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v apply_v unto_o he_o and_o his_o conscience_n be_v purge_v from_o dead_a work_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n ver_fw-la 14._o i'faith_o though_o it_o
our_o sin_n 2._o cor._n 13.4_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a for_o our_o justification_n rom._n 4.25_o 1_o cor._n 15.20_o ascend_v in_o our_o humane_a nature_n in_o which_o he_o suffer_v and_o descend_v into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n 4._o eph._n and_o in_o that_o humane_a nature_n do_v make_v intercession_n for_o we_o at_o his_o father_n right_a hand_n as_o our_o mediator_n 1_o tim._n 2.5_o if_o he_o mean_v that_o which_o they_o draw_v from_o his_o word_n he_o know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n in_o all_o his_o sermon_n and_o his_o faith_n be_v a_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n and_o therefore_o that_o which_o they_o wrest_v from_o his_o word_n be_v not_o his_o meaning_n second_o paul_n meaning_n be_v this_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v know_v after_o the_o flesh_n as_o though_o any_o man_n shall_v conceive_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v any_o privilege_n or_o prerogative_n above_o another_o in_o christ_n because_o they_o be_v his_o kinsman_n or_o countryman_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n or_o of_o the_o same_o stock_n with_o christ_n be_v descend_v from_o abraham_n or_o david_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n thus_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v know_v after_o the_o flesh_n it_o will_v avail_v man_n nothing_o that_o they_o be_v near_o to_o christ_n in_o the_o flesh_n by_o their_o natural_a birth_n unless_o they_o be_v near_o to_o christ_n and_o one_o with_o christ_n by_o their_o new_a birth_n so_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v in_o this_o place_n take_v away_o the_o difference_n which_o some_o may_v apprehend_v to_o be_v between_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o gentile_a it_o be_v parallel_n to_o that_o place_n gal._n 3.28_o there_o be_v neither_o jew_n nor_o greek_a there_o be_v neither_o bond_n nor_o free_a there_o be_v neither_o male_a nor_o female_a for_o you_o be_v all_o one_o in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o this_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o precedent_a verse_n where_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o all_o for_o gentile_n as_o well_o as_o for_o jew_n so_o that_o a_o jew_n may_v as_o soon_o be_v save_v by_o christ_n as_o a_o gentile_a if_o he_o rest_v upon_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o father_n through_o the_o redemption_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n his_o son_n for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n it_o will_v likewise_o appear_v to_o be_v the_o plain_a and_o naked_a meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n if_o we_o consider_v the_o subsequent_a word_n where_o he_o do_v publish_v forth_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o explain_v his_o meaning_n tell_v we_o that_o god_n be_v in_o christ_n reconcile_n the_o world_n to_o himself_o not_o impute_v their_o trespass_n unto_o they_o the_o sinful_a gentile_n who_o be_v call_v the_o world_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v god_n peculiar_a and_o select_a people_n gather_v out_o of_o the_o world_n from_o other_o nation_n god_n be_v reconcile_v to_o this_o world_n to_o sinful_a gentile_n as_o well_o as_o to_o god_n own_o people_n the_o jew_n and_o therefore_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v know_v among_o christian_n in_o any_o carnal_a or_o fleshly_a relation_n as_o though_o he_o be_v a_o saviour_n more_o to_o the_o jew_n then_o to_o the_o gentile_n this_o be_v to_o know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n but_o we_o that_o know_v he_o spiritual_o know_v he_o so_o no_o more_o for_o in_o the_o spirit_n we_o see_v the_o partition_n wall_n which_o be_v between_o jew_n and_o gentile_n pull_v down_o and_o know_v christ_n the_o common_a saviour_n both_o to_o jew_n and_o gentile_n which_o shall_v believe_v in_o his_o name_n and_o thus_o i_o have_v give_v you_o a_o answer_n full_o satisfactory_a to_o their_o second_o objection_n the_o three_o place_n from_o which_o they_o frame_v a_o objection_n be_v in_o eccles_n 3.19_o that_o which_o besall_v unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n befall_v beast_n even_o one_o thing_n befall_v they_o as_o the_o one_o die_v so_o die_v the_o other_o yea_o they_o have_v all_o one_o breath_n so_o that_o a_o man_n have_v no_o pre-eminence_n above_o a_o beast_n to_o this_o i_o thus_o answer_v that_o solomon_n here_o do_v not_o propose_v this_o as_o his_o own_o judgement_n but_o rather_o do_v represent_v unto_o we_o the_o opinion_n of_o carnal_a man_n who_o have_v no_o great_a light_n than_o the_o dim_a eye_n of_o reason_n and_o do_v acquaint_v we_o with_o their_o folly_n and_o ignorance_n by_o communicate_v his_o own_o experience_n unto_o we_o i_o say_v in_o my_o heart_n ver_fw-la 18._o he_o speak_v this_o in_o his_o heart_n when_o the_o darkness_n of_o his_o spirit_n do_v as_o a_o thick_a cloud_n hide_v the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n from_o he_o he_o do_v not_o speak_v this_o from_o his_o heart_n and_o spirit_n enlighten_v with_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n but_o from_o his_o heart_n under_o a_o mist_n of_o error_n be_v surround_v with_o great_a temptation_n and_o this_o will_v appear_v by_o many_o passage_n which_o he_o utter_v in_o this_o book_n which_o do_v whole_o contradict_v that_o which_o they_o will_v gather_v from_o these_o word_n as_o the_o meaning_n of_o solomon_n for_o the_o overthrow_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o instance_n ecc_n 11.9_o how_o do_v he_o labour_n to_o draw_v young_a man_n from_o the_o pursuit_n of_o the_o world_n pleasure_n and_o vanity_n by_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n that_o god_n will_v bring_v they_o unto_o judgement_n and_o what_o a_o plain_a place_n be_v that_o against_o sadducee_n familist_n and_o libertine_n that_o deny_v a_o judgement_n day_n and_o a_o resurrection_n with_o which_o he_o do_v put_v a_o period_n to_o this_o book_n ecc_n 12._o and_o the_o last_o god_n shall_v bring_v every_o work_n into_o judgement_n with_o every_o secret_a thing_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o whether_o it_o be_v evil_a i_o shall_v not_o trouble_v you_o with_o any_o more_o of_o their_o argument_n because_o they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o those_o which_o have_v be_v bring_v already_o and_o the_o same_o answer_n which_o have_v be_v give_v unto_o these_o will_v give_v sufficient_a satisfaction_n to_o any_o other_o objection_n which_o may_v be_v bring_v against_o this_o truth_n 2._o use_v from_o this_o error_n again_o since_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n appear_v so_o clear_a in_o scripture_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o body_n and_o of_o the_o same_o body_n let_v we_o abhor_v and_o abandon_v the_o gross_a fanatical_a conceit_n of_o all_o that_o we_o meet_v with_o that_o profess_v themselves_o open_a enemy_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n brethren_n i_o beseech_v you_o loath_a abhor_v and_o detest_v this_o hellish_a diabolical_a doctrine_n for_o as_o christian_n be_v to_o embrace_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n with_o all_o zeal_n and_o affection_n of_o spirit_n so_o we_o be_v to_o detest_v and_o abhor_v all_o error_n that_o oppose_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n with_o all_o zeal_n and_o fervency_n of_o spirit_n though_o these_o be_v much_o offend_v with_o the_o zeal_n and_o sharpness_n of_o the_o saint_n suppose_v that_o such_o heat_n and_o holy_a anger_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n and_o therefore_o if_o a_o man_n though_o in_o the_o spirit_n witness_v against_o these_o conceit_n and_o atheistical_a opinion_n of_o they_o present_o they_o say_v that_o though_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n because_o he_o be_v so_o sharp_a in_o his_o speech_n but_o consider_v how_o our_o bless_a saviour_n oft_o in_o his_o preach_n and_o discourse_n thunder_n and_o lighten_v in_o the_o face_n of_o man_n that_o oppose_v the_o truth_n do_v he_o not_o call_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n a_o generation_n of_o viper_n and_o adulterer_n to_o their_o face_n and_o have_v not_o paul_n and_o peter_n expression_n to_o this_o purpose_n peter_n tell_v simon_n magus_n he_o be_v in_o the_o very_a gall_n of_o bitterness_n do_v not_o paul_n call_v elymas_n the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o enemy_n of_o all_o righteousness_n act._n 13.10_o and_o our_o saviour_n tell_v the_o hypocrite_n that_o he_o preach_v to_o joh._n 8._o you_o be_v of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n therefore_o know_v that_o as_o christ_n though_o he_o have_v the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o he_o yet_o he_o make_v use_v of_o such_o sharp_a and_o bitter_a speech_n so_o a_o man_n may_v have_v such_o speech_n in_o his_o mouth_n and_o yet_o he_o may_v be_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o speak_v to_o god_n glory_n when_o he_o thus_o speak_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v commend_v that_o he_o can_v not_o bear_v with_o those_o that_o be_v evil_a and_o that_o
he_o hate_v the_o work_n of_o the_o nicolaitan_n himself_o and_o our_o saviour_n do_v profess_v his_o hatred_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o nicolaitan_n and_o why_o shall_v a_o christian_a be_v afraid_a to_o imitate_v his_o saviour_n though_o these_o will_v censure_v he_o for_o it_o if_o this_o be_v to_o be_v vile_a and_o without_o love_n to_o speak_v bitter_o against_o such_o bitter_a enemy_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o a_o zealous_a christian_a say_v as_o david_n say_v to_o michal_n when_o she_o scoff_v he_o for_o his_o devotion_n to_o his_o god_n 2_o sam._n 6.22_o i_o will_v be_v yet_o more_o vile_a than_o thus_o therefore_o let_v i_o desire_v you_o that_o you_o will_v abhor_v these_o tenant_n and_o opinion_n of_o they_o which_o do_v overthrow_v the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n if_o this_o that_o they_o hold_v be_v a_o truth_n which_o we_o deny_v there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o this_o book_n that_o we_o hold_v if_o this_o be_v a_o truth_n that_o they_o profess_v there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o jesus_n christ_n that_o profess_v himself_o the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n and_o as_o the_o apostle_n preach_v 1_o cor._n 15._o the_o apostle_n shall_v be_v find_v false_a witness_n of_o god_n for_o they_o preach_v that_o christ_n though_o he_o suffer_v on_o the_o cross_n his_o body_n be_v raise_v and_o in_o it_o he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n and_o mediate_n and_o intercede_v as_o a_o advocate_n for_o we_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o rise_v than_o we_o be_v false_a witness_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 15.15_o because_o we_o have_v testify_v that_o he_o raise_v up_o christ_n who_o he_o raise_v not_o up_o if_o the_o dead_a rise_v not_o and_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v find_v false_a witness_n and_o impostor_n who_o then_o be_v the_o man_n that_o we_o must_v look_v on_o as_o divine_a man_n as_o know_v understand_a man_n we_o must_v look_v on_o these_o as_o a_o generation_n of_o liar_n that_o have_v deceive_v we_o and_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v rise_v and_o that_o we_o shall_v rise_v by_o his_o power_n and_o there_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n who_o be_v to_o be_v eye_v as_o man_n of_o truth_n we_o must_v look_v on_o lucian_n that_o in_o his_o dialogue_n and_o other_o book_n jeer_v those_o that_o expect_v happiness_n after_o this_o life_n or_o fear_v misery_n and_o call_v our_o bless_a jesus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o sophister_n that_o be_v hang_v upon_o a_o cross_n we_o must_v look_v on_o he_o as_o a_o orthodox_n man_n as_o a_o divine_a writer_n pliny_n that_o write_v of_o the_o soul_n immortality_n and_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n we_o must_v look_v on_o he_o as_o canonical_a julian_n the_o apostate_n must_v be_v admire_v for_o his_o wisdom_n to_o throw_v away_o our_o bibles_n or_o burn_v they_o as_o those_o in_o the_o 19_o act_n 19_o do_v burn_v their_o book_n of_o curious_a art_n will_v be_v a_o point_n of_o wisdom_n and_o discretion_n it_o will_v be_v no_o impiety_n to_o deny_v the_o truth_n that_o peter_n paul_n and_o other_o servant_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v preach_v and_o seal_v with_o their_o blood_n o_o brethren_n take_v heed_n of_o this_o hellish_a hellish_a doctrine_n take_v heed_n of_o these_o seducer_n beware_v of_o these_o wolf_n that_o come_v in_o sheep_n clothing_n see_v how_o this_o tenant_n plant_v its_o ordnance_n to_o batter_v down_o all_o goodness_n all_o the_o hope_n of_o christian_n and_o strength_n of_o christianity_n 3._o use_v the_o belief_n of_o this_o truth_n may_v bring_v in_o stream_n of_o joy_n to_o our_o soul_n and_o spirit_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o great_a trouble_n and_o misery_n that_o can_v come_v upon_o we_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o have_v lay_v down_o this_o point_n 1_o thess_n 4.1_o see_v what_o use_n he_o make_v of_o it_o in_o the_o 18._o ver_fw-la for_o their_o consolation_n bid_v they_o to_o comfort_v one_o another_o with_o those_o word_n in_o your_o weakness_n and_o sickness_n consider_v that_o these_o body_n that_o be_v frail_a mortal_a and_o must_v after_o a_o while_o moulder_v into_o dust_n shall_v at_o the_o resurrection_n be_v make_v like_o unto_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o christ_n phil._n 3._o last_o be_v death_n approach_v do_v the_o king_n of_o fear_n job_n 18.14_o knock_v at_o the_o door_n of_o your_o cottage_n of_o clay_n let_v the_o fear_n of_o death_n be_v kill_v by_o the_o meditation_n of_o this_o that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n by_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n have_v abolish_v our_o death_n and_o bring_v life_n and_o immortality_n to_o light_v through_o his_o glorious_a gospel_n 2_o tim._n 1.10_o christ_n cujus_fw-la victoria_fw-la nostra_fw-la est_fw-la who_o victory_n be_v we_o have_v overcome_v sin_n the_o grave_n death_n hell_n and_o he_o arise_v as_o a_o public_a person_n his_o glorious_a resurrection_n may_v be_v a_o pledge_n unto_o we_o of_o our_o future_a resurrection_n in_o glory_n our_o body_n be_v call_v in_o scripture_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n let_v i_o tell_v you_o that_o god_n will_v not_o pull_v down_o his_o temple_n unless_o he_o intend_v to_o build_v they_o up_o again_o he_o will_v set_v up_o these_o temple_n in_o glory_n which_o he_o pull_v down_o and_o lay_v in_o the_o dust_n with_o dishonour_n i_o remember_v what_o a_o divine_a poet_n say_v speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n pellite_fw-la cord_n metum_fw-la mea_fw-la membra_fw-la &_o credit_n vosmet_fw-la cum_fw-la christo_fw-la reditura_fw-la deo_fw-la atra_fw-la sepulera_fw-la respuite_fw-la prudentius_n my_o limb_n drive_v away_o from_o you_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n you_o shall_v with_o christ_n return_v to_o god_n sleight_v the_o blackness_n and_o horror_n of_o the_o grave_n which_o do_v sweet_o accord_v with_o the_o divine_a rapture_n of_o paul_n 1_o cor._n 15.55_o 56_o 57_o o_o death_n where_o be_v thy_o sting_n o_o grave_n where_o be_v thy_o victory_n the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v sin_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o law_n but_o thanks_o be_v to_o god_n which_o give_v we_o victory_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n the_o full_a persuasion_n of_o this_o be_v that_o which_o have_v fill_v the_o spirit_n of_o christian_n with_o joy_n and_o fortitude_n in_o their_o suffering_n the_o heavenly_a company_n of_o martyr_n that_o sacrifice_v their_o life_n for_o christ_n do_v deserve_v rather_o to_o be_v register_v in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o fool_n then_o to_o be_v dignify_v or_o ennoble_v as_o saint_n with_o the_o crown_n of_o martyrdom_n have_v they_o suffer_v and_o question_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o resurrection_n this_o have_v make_v their_o suffering_n comfortable_a to_o they_o and_o glorious_a to_o we_o as_o our_o pattern_n and_o example_n for_o imitation_n this_o have_v make_v they_o so_o willing_a to_o hazard_v their_o life_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v this_o that_o have_v make_v they_o so_o prodigal_a of_o their_o blood_n that_o i_o remember_v it_o be_v report_v of_o one_o of_o the_o heathen_a persecutor_n that_o he_o say_v he_o think_v the_o christian_n delight_v in_o torment_n they_o seem_v to_o sleight_v all_o punishment_n and_o torture_n that_o the_o witty_a malice_n of_o their_o adversary_n can_v invent_v or_o their_o cruelty_n inflict_v this_o carry_v they_o forth_o in_o that_o height_n of_o spirit_n that_o they_o rejoice_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o torture_n it_o be_v this_o that_o cheer_v the_o heart_n of_o a_o martyr_n that_o be_v trouble_v a_o little_a before_o his_o suffering_n the_o comforter_n come_v and_o assure_v he_o of_o happiness_n at_o the_o resurrection_n gregorius_n nazianzenus_n in_o his_o three_o oration_n tell_v we_o of_o theclas_n and_o some_o other_o martyr_n that_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o spectator_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v very_o merry_a in_o the_o extremity_n of_o torment_n marcus_z of_o arethusa_n when_o the_o bloody_a persecutor_n have_v exercise_v his_o faith_n and_o patience_n with_o several_a sort_n of_o torture_n and_o do_v afterward_o draw_v he_o through_o draught_n and_o other_o noisome_a place_n he_o account_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d rather_o his_o pomp_n and_o glory_n than_o his_o misery_n and_o calamity_n woman_n have_v discover_v masculine_a and_o heroical_a spirit_n when_o they_o be_v call_v to_o suffer_v for_o the_o lord_n nostri_fw-la pveri_fw-la &_o mulierculae_fw-la tortores_fw-la suos_fw-la taciti_fw-la vincunt_fw-la &_o exprimere_fw-la illis_fw-la gemitum_fw-la nec_fw-la ignis_fw-la potest_fw-la lactantius_n say_v that_o the_o christian_a child_n and_o woman_n do_v by_o their_o silence_n overcome_v their_o tormentor_n and_o the_o flame_n of_o fire_n can_v not_o make_v they_o weep_v austin_n tell_v of_o a_o poor_a weak_a maid_n that_o go_v to_o suffer_v for_o christ_n
to_o christ_n yet_o i_o apprehend_v that_o this_o be_v the_o true_a spiritual_a meaning_n of_o god_n in_o the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v open_v to_o you_o this_o day_n the_o point_n than_o will_v be_v this_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o shall_v be_v raise_v be_v the_o dead_a body_n of_o christ_n himself_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cadaver_n meum_fw-la resurgent_fw-la they_o shall_v arise_v as_o my_o carcase_n or_o dead_a body_n which_o i_o shall_v enlarge_v by_o some_o consideration_n first_o consideration_n christ_n and_o his_o member_n be_v one_o therefore_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v raise_v as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n be_v the_o member_n of_o the_o head_n christ_n jesus_n he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n therefore_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v raise_v they_o be_v raise_v as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n ephes_n 5.30_o we_o be_v member_n of_o his_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o bone_n the_o body_n of_o a_o saint_n be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o flesh_n of_o a_o saint_n be_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o saint_n be_v one_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n paul_n persecute_v the_o saint_n and_o cast_v their_o body_n into_o prison_n christ_n call_v to_o he_o from_o heaven_n why_o persecute_v thou_o i_o when_o the_o body_n of_o a_o saint_n be_v imprison_v christ_n be_v then_o shut_v up_o in_o prison_n so_o when_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v raise_v the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v raise_v as_o the_o animal_n spirit_n lie_v in_o the_o head_n by_o which_o motion_n be_v convey_v to_o the_o member_n so_o the_o spirit_n of_o power_n lie_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o which_o we_o be_v move_v by_o which_o we_o be_v raise_v in_o which_o spirit_n we_o both_o in_o body_n and_o spirit_n be_v make_v one_o with_o the_o lord_n christ_n this_o doctrine_n of_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n be_v likewise_o set_v forth_o by_o paul_n 1_o cor._n 6.15_o know_v you_o not_o say_v the_o apostle_n that_o your_o body_n be_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n shall_v i_o then_o take_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o make_v they_o the_o member_n of_o a_o harlot_n as_o the_o hand_n or_o foot_n of_o a_o man_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o man_n so_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n for_o as_o the_o head_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n make_v one_o natural_a body_n in_o that_o one_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o they_o all_o and_o act_n in_o they_o all_o so_o christ_n and_o all_o believer_n make_v one_o in_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n by_o that_o one_o spirit_n which_o dwell_v in_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n of_o every_o true_a believer_n 1_o cor._n 12.12_o as_o the_o body_n be_v one_o and_o have_v many_o member_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o that_o one_o body_n be_v many_o be_v one_o body_n so_o also_o be_v christ_n here_o you_o see_v that_o the_o apostle_n call_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n christ_n mystical_a so_o also_o be_v christ_n say_v he_o he_o give_v the_o church_n the_o name_n of_o christ_n by_o reason_n of_o this_o near_a union_n which_o be_v between_o christ_n jesus_n and_o all_o his_o member_n again_o the_o saint_n they_o be_v marry_v to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n &_o as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o wife_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o husband_n so_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n as_o well_o as_o their_o soul_n belong_v to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o be_v one_o with_o he_o and_o as_o adam_n when_o eve_n be_v bring_v to_o he_o say_v this_o be_v bone_n of_o my_o bone_n and_o flesh_n of_o my_o flesh_n so_o christ_n when_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v raise_v raise_v his_o own_o body_n and_o will_v say_v this_o be_v bone_n of_o my_o bone_n and_o flesh_n of_o my_o flesh_n then_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a marriage_n of_o the_o lamb_n than_o it_o shall_v be_v solemnize_v in_o a_o most_o glorious_a manner_n and_o than_o christ_n shall_v own_v all_o those_o who_o be_v give_v to_o he_o by_o the_o father_n and_o there_o in_o a_o solemn_a manner_n shall_v he_o marry_v they_o to_o himself_o he_o shall_v own_v they_o all_o for_o his_o own_o wife_n and_o they_o all_o shall_v be_v look_v on_o as_o one_o in_o he_o likewise_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o be_v raise_v be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o sprig_n of_o a_o tree_n or_o the_o branch_n of_o a_o vine_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o tree_n or_o part_n of_o the_o vine_n our_o saviour_n set_v forth_o this_o simile_n to_o we_o joh._n 15._o where_o he_o compare_v himself_o to_o a_o vine_n and_o all_o believer_n to_o branch_n in_o this_o vine_n christ_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o great_a vine_n in_o the_o resurrection_n and_o all_o believer_n shall_v be_v branch_n and_o sprig_n sprout_v out_o of_o this_o vine_n from_o that_o life_n power_n and_o spirit_n that_o god_n shall_v put_v forth_o through_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n this_o union_n be_v not_o by_o the_o confusion_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v unite_v as_o the_o ignorant_a familist_n do_v fond_o conceive_v but_o by_o the_o union_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v different_a in_o their_o personal_a being_n and_o individual_a nature_n which_o will_v appear_v by_o the_o similitude_n which_o god_n do_v make_v use_n of_o for_o the_o illustrate_v of_o this_o truth_n unto_o we_o as_o of_o body_n and_o member_n though_o all_o the_o member_n do_v make_v but_o one_o body_n yet_o every_o member_n do_v retain_v its_o proper_a place_n office_n and_o be_v in_o the_o body_n so_o that_o the_o hand_n be_v not_o the_o foot_n nor_o the_o foot_n the_o arm_n or_o head_n so_o it_o be_v between_o christ_n and_o his_o people_n christ_n still_o remain_v in_o his_o own_o person_n as_o head_n and_o they_o as_o several_a member_n belong_v to_o that_o head_n the_o spirit_n and_o body_n make_v one_o man_n yet_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o the_o body_n nor_o the_o body_n the_o spirit_n the_o vine_n and_o branch_n be_v one_o yet_o the_o vine_n be_v not_o the_o branch_n nor_o the_o branch_n the_o vine_n the_o husband_n and_o wife_n be_v one_o yet_o the_o husband_n be_v not_o the_o wife_n nor_o the_o wife_n the_o husband_n the_o second_o consideration_n for_o the_o amplify_a of_o this_o point_n may_v be_v this_o because_o that_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v or_o suffer_v be_v that_o he_o may_v bring_v all_o believer_n to_o a_o oneness_n with_o himself_o and_o the_o father_n and_o this_o be_v that_o he_o pray_v for_o joh._n 17._o the_o glory_n that_o thou_o give_v i_o i_o have_v givent_fw-fr hem_n that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o as_o we_o be_v one_o christ_n do_v therefore_o bear_v our_o sin_n christ_n do_v therefore_o put_v himself_o under_o all_o the_o curse_n due_a to_o we_o for_o our_o enormity_n he_o do_v therefore_o man_n fest_n himself_o as_o a_o conqueror_n over_o all_o the_o enemy_n that_o oppose_v we_o that_o all_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v any_o hindrance_n to_o our_o union_n or_o hinder_v our_o spiritual_a communion_n with_o god_n be_v remove_v in_o he_o eph._n 12.14_o we_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o a_o oneness_n and_o see_v ourselves_o as_o one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n with_o he_o our_o happiness_n lie_v in_o our_o oneness_n with_o father_n word_n and_o spirit_n which_o be_v but_o one_o man_n make_v himself_o miserable_a by_o disunit_a himself_n from_o god_n who_o be_v but_o one_o mar._n 12.29_o and_o christ_n do_v make_v he_o happy_a by_o bring_v he_o back_o again_o to_o that_o oneness_n which_o he_o have_v with_o god_n it_o be_v the_o office_n and_o employment_n of_o christ_n to_o bring_v all_o thing_n from_o disunion_n to_o union_n and_o oneness_n with_o himself_o and_o the_o father_n which_o he_o have_v effect_v for_o we_o and_o therefore_o they_o shall_v be_v raise_v as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o rise_v the_o three_o consideration_n be_v this_o they_o shall_v rise_v as_o his_o dead_a body_n because_o they_o shall_v rise_v as_o the_o proper_a good_n possession_n and_o inheritance_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n ask_v of_o i_o and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o beathen_a for_o thy_o inheritance_n and_o the_o utmost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o thy_o possession_n they_o shall_v be_v raise_v as_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o christ_n shall_v have_v a_o right_n propriety_n and_o interest_n in_o they_o you_o be_v not_o
your_o own_o you_o be_v buy_v with_o a_o price_n your_o body_n as_o well_o as_o your_o spirit_n be_v god_n etc._n etc._n 1_o cor._n 6.20_o the_o apostle_n give_v this_o reason_n why_o christ_n die_v and_o revive_v and_o rise_v again_o that_o he_o may_v be_v lord_n of_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a rom._n 14.9_o that_o as_o a_o servant_n be_v more_o his_o master_n then_o his_o own_o so_o christ_n be_v the_o lord_n of_o the_o resurrection_n we_o shall_v be_v more_o his_o then_o 〈◊〉_d own_o we_o shall_v be_v raise_v as_o those_o in_o who_o christ_n have_v a_o propriety_n and_o interest_n we_o shall_v be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n he_o shall_v be_v king_n and_o lord_n over_o we_o all_o and_o rule_v over_o we_o his_o sceptre_n of_o glory_n shall_v be_v set_v up_o in_o every_o heart_n and_o his_o throne_n shall_v be_v exalt_v in_o every_o spirit_n thus_o my_o dead_a body_n they_o shall_v rise_v they_o shall_v rise_v as_o i_o they_o be_v my_o dead_a man_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o live_a man_n here_o you_o see_v that_o christ_n will_v own_v they_o for_o his_o when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o dust_n there_o be_v some_o that_o shall_v speak_v to_o christ_n at_o the_o resurrection_n as_o though_o they_o be_v familiar_o acquaint_v with_o he_o who_o he_o will_v not_o own_o say_v depart_v from_o 〈◊〉_d i_o know_v you_o not_o you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n but_o christ_n will_v own_v his_o saint_n mal._n 3.17_o they_o shall_v be_v i_o say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n when_o i_o make_v up_o my_o jewel_n or_o special_a treasure_n and_o i_o will_v spare_v they_o as_o a_o man_n spare_v his_o own_o son_n that_o serve_v he_o as_o man_n will_v not_o part_v with_o their_o jewel_n so_o christ_n will_v not_o lose_v the_o body_n of_o his_o saint_n they_o be_v part_n of_o his_o special_a treasure_n the_o four_o consideration_n be_v this_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o shall_v be_v raise_v may_v be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n for_o this_o reason_n because_o christ_n in_o the_o spirit_n shall_v be_v the_o life_n soul_n and_o form_n that_o shall_v give_v life_n and_o be_v to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n at_o the_o resurrection_n as_o the_o body_n be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o dwell_v in_o it_o so_o christ_n jesus_n dwell_v in_o the_o body_n of_o his_o saint_n by_o his_o spirit_n their_o body_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v his_o body_n and_o as_o a_o man_n may_v say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n it_o belong_v to_o that_o humane_a spirit_n in_o i_o because_o his_o humane_a spirit_n move_v live_v in_o it_o and_o do_v as_o a_o divine_a power_n act_n in_o it_o so_o our_o body_n be_v raise_v may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o he_o shall_v act_v as_o the_o spirit_n form_n and_o soul_n in_o they_o christ_n shall_v be_v the_o soul_n which_o shall_v give_v life_n and_o be_v to_o all_o saint_n which_o shall_v be_v raise_v by_o he_o the_o five_o consideration_n death_n can_v dissolve_v the_o union_n which_o be_v between_o christ_n and_o a_o believer_n the_o love_n of_o the_o father_n be_v the_o urn_n in_o which_o the_o ash_n of_o dead_a saint_n be_v preserve_v rom._n 8.38_o 39_o i_o be_o persuade_v say_v paul_n that_o neither_o death_n nor_o life_n nor_o angel_n nor_o principality_n nor_o power_n nor_o thing_n present_a nor_o thing_n to_o come_v nor_o height_n nor_o depth_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n man_n do_v consist_v of_o a_o natural_a body_n and_o humane_a spirit_n and_o death_n can_v make_v a_o separation_n between_o god_n love_n and_o our_o body_n no_o more_o than_o it_o can_v make_v a_o separation_n between_o his_o love_n and_o our_o soul_n among_o the_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v bestow_v upon_o we_o in_o christ_n the_o apostle_n do_v reckon_v up_o death_n 1_o cor._n 3.22_o which_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o curse_n but_o a_o blessing_n to_o saint_n it_o will_v be_v a_o curse_n unto_o we_o do_v it_o bring_v a_o irrecoverable_a ruin_n and_o destruction_n to_o our_o body_n rev._n 14.13_o bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n death_n disability_n to_o cast_v our_o body_n out_o of_o god_n love_n and_o protection_n be_v that_o which_o do_v convert_v death_n through_o christ_n into_o a_o blessing_n unto_o we_o paul_n call_v saint_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o bodily_a death_n 1_o thess_n 4.14_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d those_o that_o sleep_n in_o christ_n as_o sleep_n do_v not_o bereave_v man_n of_o life_n so_o death_n do_v not_o take_v away_o from_o saint_n their_o life_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n as_o a_o philosopher_n tell_v a_o tyrant_n he_o may_v kill_v he_o but_o not_o hurt_v he_o so_o death_n may_v kill_v but_o can_v hurt_v a_o saint_n because_o the_o union_n between_o god_n and_o he_o be_v indissolvible_a rom._n 14.8_o whether_o we_o live_v or_o die_v we_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o therefore_o it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o arise_v sixth_o consideration_n the_o body_n of_o saint_n be_v sanctify_v by_o christ_n and_o therefore_o he_o can_v but_o own_v they_o sanctification_n be_v the_o mark_n or_o seal_v of_o christ_n as_o merchant_n do_v set_v their_o seal_n and_o mark_n upon_o their_o good_n which_o they_o will_v own_v so_o christ_n will_v for_o ever_o own_o that_o upon_o which_o he_o have_v set_v the_o seal_n and_o mark_v of_o his_o sanctify_a spirit_n the_o spirit_n dwell_v in_o the_o body_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o saint_n and_o christ_n will_v never_o cease_v to_o own_o his_o own_o house_n and_o the_o place_n which_o he_o have_v choose_v for_o his_o habitation_n god_n do_v not_o only_o honour_v our_o body_n by_o call_v they_o his_o house_n but_o call_v they_o his_o temple_n 1_o cor._n 6.19_o know_v you_o not_o that_o your_o body_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n it_o be_v not_o a_o paradox_n then_o in_o divinity_n that_o christ_n at_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v own_v they_o as_o his_o own_o seven_o consideration_n christ_n shall_v be_v incomplete_a a_o man_n that_o want_v a_o member_n be_v incomplete_a and_o imperfect_a so_o christ_n shall_v be_v imperfect_a and_o incomplete_a be_v he_o defective_a in_o any_o of_o his_o member_n at_o the_o resurrection_n and_o therefore_o all_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n must_v be_v raise_v as_o his_o body_n it_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o some_o of_o the_o schoolman_n make_v use_v of_o to_o prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o resurrection_n of_o body_n from_o the_o incompleatnesse_n of_o the_o soul_n when_o it_o be_v separate_v from_o its_o proper_a body_n which_o it_o do_v inform_v and_o with_o which_o in_o union_n it_o make_v one_o compositum_fw-la so_o the_o body_n of_o saint_n must_v be_v raise_v that_o christ_n may_v be_v complete_a in_o his_o mystical_a body_n as_o he_o be_v in_o his_o own_o person_n the_o church_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n eph._n 1._o last_o because_o as_o a_o body_n be_v not_o full_a and_o complete_a in_o his_o be_v that_o want_v a_o member_n so_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v complete_a if_o any_o part_n of_o he_o be_v want_v and_o therefore_o the_o body_n of_o all_o saint_n must_v be_v raise_v that_o christ_n may_v appear_v in_o his_o glory_n and_o completeness_n at_o the_o resurrection_n and_o thus_o have_v open_v this_o doctrine_n and_o illustrate_v it_o by_o these_o consideration_n i_o shall_v draw_v some_o useful_a conclusion_n from_o it_o use_v 1_o see_v christian_n shall_v be_v one_o body_n at_o the_o resurrection_n this_o shall_v teach_v we_o to_o be_v one_o here_o in_o the_o bond_n of_o love_n that_o one_o member_n shall_v oppose_v and_o fight_v against_o another_o member_n be_v against_o nature_n and_o that_o one_o christian_n shall_v fight_v against_o another_o or_o take_v his_o fellow-member_n by_o the_o throat_n be_v against_o the_o principle_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o 13._o of_o gen._n and_o the_o s._n ver_fw-la abram_n do_v thus_o speak_v unto_o his_o brother_n lot_n let_v there_o be_v no_o strife_n i_o pray_v thou_o between_o i_o and_o thou_o for_o we_o be_v brethren_n christian_n shall_v not_o strive_v or_o contend_v one_o against_o another_o because_o they_o be_v fellow-member_n it_o be_v report_v of_o john_n that_o in_o his_o old_a age_n be_v unable_a by_o weakness_n to_o speak_v long_o unto_o the_o congregation_n he_o will_v stand_v up_o and_o in_o stead_n of_o a_o long_a sermon_n ingeminate_v this_o precept_n diligite_fw-la filioli_fw-la diligite_fw-la
little_o child_n love_n love_v one_o another_o there_o can_v be_v no_o strong_a argument_n to_o love_v then_o the_o consideration_n of_o our_o union_n col._n 3.15_o let_v the_o peace_n of_o god_n rule_n in_o your_o heart_n to_o the_o which_o also_o you_o be_v call_v in_o one_o body_n war_n among_o member_n be_v unnatural_a that_o love_n and_o peace_n may_v reign_v and_o rule_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o christian_n god_n do_v make_v they_o all_o one_o body_n so_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o three_o of_o the_o eph._n 6._o do_v teach_v we_o that_o jew_n and_o gentile_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d part_n of_o the_o same_o body_n one_o that_o desire_v to_o moderate_v between_o the_o calvinist_n and_o lutheran_n wish_v they_o not_o to_o be_v so_o bitter_a the_o one_o against_o the_o other_o make_v use_v of_o this_o argument_n tell_v they_o that_o luther_n and_o calvin_n be_v reconcile_v in_o love_n together_o in_o heaven_n let_v not_o strife_n hatred_n malice_n and_o bitterness_n prevail_v among_o you_o christian_n for_o you_o shall_v sweet_o agree_v together_o as_o one_o body_n in_o one_o spirit_n at_o the_o resurrection_n use_v 2._o there_o be_v such_o a_o glorius_fw-la union_n between_o we_o and_o christ_n it_o shall_v engage_v the_o spirit_n of_o saint_n to_o be_v much_o in_o the_o contemplation_n of_o it_o as_o the_o blood_n and_o spirit_n do_v run_v through_o the_o body_n so_o this_o doctrine_n of_o union_n do_v run_v through_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christian_a religion_n our_o justification_n in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n &_o our_o own_o justification_n in_o our_o own_o person_n by_o christ_n can_v be_v clear_o understand_v if_o we_o be_v total_o ignorant_a of_o union_n with_o christ_n as_o the_o philosopher_n say_v that_o all_o moral_a virtue_n be_v link_v together_o in_o justice_n so_o all_o the_o point_n of_o christianity_n be_v concatenate_v and_o join_v together_o in_o this_o doctrine_n of_o union_n as_o the_o star_n do_v lead_v the_o wise_a man_n to_o christ_n shine_v over_o the_o place_n where_o christ_n be_v so_o this_o doctrine_n of_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n shinnig_v among_o other_o truth_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o scripture_n do_v hold_v forth_o unto_o we_o a_o light_n to_o direct_v we_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n into_o a_o perfect_a and_o comfortable_a knowledge_n of_o all_o other_o truth_n as_o it_o do_v in_o a_o especial_a manner_n beam_n forth_o light_a unto_o we_o to_o confirm_v we_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n for_o you_o see_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v raise_v because_o they_o be_v unite_v to_o christ_n and_o one_o with_o he_o therefore_o this_o may_v strengthen_v the_o faith_n of_o every_o one_o of_o we_o concern_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o resurrection_n what_o say_v the_o apostle_n no_o man_n yet_o ever_o hate_v his_o own_o flesh_n but_o nourish_v it_o and_o cherish_v it_o eph._n 5.29_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n can_v hate_v his_o own_o flesh_n nor_o forget_v his_o own_o body_n the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n but_o in_o love_n will_v raise_v they_o even_o while_o they_o lie_v in_o the_o dust_n they_o be_v his_o body_n our_o propriety_n in_o a_o thing_n do_v draw_v out_o our_o affection_n to_o the_o thing_n our_o body_n belong_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v in_o his_o heart_n and_o affection_n even_o while_o they_o moulder_v in_o the_o dust_n therefore_o let_v this_o truth_n nierce_v your_o understanding_n and_o sink_v deep_a into_o your_o memory_n and_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o your_o body_n shall_v be_v raise_v because_o they_o be_v not_o so_o much_o your_o body_n as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o scripture_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v speak_v so_o glorious_o of_o that_o union_n which_o all_o the_o saint_n have_v with_o jesus_n christ_n in_o that_o one_o spirit_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o in_o every_o saint_n that_o it_o seem_v to_o hold_v forth_o christ_n as_o incomplete_a till_o he_o have_v gather_v all_o his_o member_n into_o one_o body_n and_o certain_o christ_n will_v not_o appear_v incomplete_a in_o his_o body_n at_o the_o resurrection_n which_o he_o shall_v do_v shall_v he_o not_o by_o his_o power_n command_v the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n to_o come_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n therefore_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v any_o part_n of_o himself_o to_o lie_v in_o the_o dust_n he_o will_v not_o appear_v at_o the_o general_a resurrection_n without_o a_o limb_n not_o without_o a_o hand_n not_o without_o a_o finger_n not_o without_o the_o least_o member_n thou_o that_o be_v the_o mean_a christian_n that_o apprehend_v thyself_o to_o be_v but_o as_o the_o toe_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v strong_o persuade_v of_o thy_o resurrection_n for_o i_o tell_v thou_o wh●●_n christ_n shall_v appear_v at_o the_o great_a resurrection_n he_o will_v not_o be_v without_o a_o toe_n not_o without_o the_o low_a and_o most_o inferior_a member_n of_o his_o body_n he_o will_v appear_v in_o his_o fullness_n and_o all_o the_o saint_n gather_v together_o and_o make_v one_o with_o he_o in_o body_n and_o spirit_n be_v his_o fullness_n and_o completeness_n the_o king_n when_o he_o ride_v in_o triumph_n or_o to_o his_o great_a counsel_n he_o ride_v in_o his_o royal_a robe_n and_o in_o all_o his_o glory_n when_o christ_n shall_v appear_v the_o second_o time_n he_o will_v ride_v in_o triumph_n as_o a_o conqueror_n of_o all_o enemy_n and_o will_v ride_v to_o his_o great_a counsel_n or_o parliament_n of_o saint_n who_o be_v to_o judge_v the_o delinquent_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o saint_n be_v his_o glory_n 2_o cor._n 8.23_o and_o therefore_o they_o must_v be_v raise_v that_o he_o may_v be_v in_o his_o full_a glory_n if_o thou_o look_v upon_o thyself_o and_o thy_o body_n and_o consider_v how_o thou_o have_v dishonour_v god_n in_o thy_o body_n it_o may_v be_v thou_o may_v be_v startle_v in_o thy_o spirit_n and_o have_v such_o sad_a thought_n as_o these_o will_v christ_n ever_o raise_v this_o body_n as_o he_o that_o i_o have_v abuse_v to_o sin_n shall_v this_o body_n be_v glorify_v which_o i_o have_v dishonour_v by_o base_a and_o filthy_a lust_n but_o when_o thou_o have_v any_o such_o thought_n as_o these_o in_o which_o the_o devil_n appear_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n to_o make_v thou_o question_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o glorious_a resurrection_n of_o thy_o body_n then_o look_v beyond_o thyself_o beyond_o the_o sin_n that_o thou_o have_v commit_v against_o god_n in_o thy_o body_n and_o spirit_n and_o think_v thus_o with_o thyself_o this_o body_n though_o i_o have_v abuse_v it_o by_o lust_n and_o intemperance_n though_o i_o have_v dishonour_v god_n by_o the_o sin_n which_o i_o have_v commit_v and_o act_v a●_n it_o be_v upon_o a_o stage_n in_o this_o body_n and_o flesh_n of_o i_o yet_o now_o the_o property_n be_v alter_v i_o be_o not_o now_o to_o look_v on_o it_o as_o my_o body_n i_o be_o to_o look_v on_o it_o as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n it_o be_v that_o body_n that_o he_o have_v wash_v from_o all_o sin_n in_o his_o own_o blood_n it_o be_v that_o body_n that_o he_o die_v for_o that_o he_o may_v cleanse_v it_o from_o filthiness_n and_o uncleanness_n it_o be_v his_o body_n he_o have_v right_a to_o it_o and_o a_o propriety_n in_o it_o it_o be_v he_o and_o none_o of_o i_o christ_n will_v not_o lose_v that_o which_o belong_v to_o himself_o and_o therefore_o it_o shall_v be_v raise_v in_o glory_n we_o see_v how_o unwilling_a man_n be_v to_o part_v with_o that_o which_o be_v their_o possession_n and_o inheritance_n we_o know_v how_o naboth_n answer_v abab_v who_o will_v have_v have_v his_o vineyard_n 1_o king_n 21.3_o shall_v i_o give_v the_o inheritance_n of_o my_o father_n unto_o thou_o we_o be_v the_o inheritance_n the_o possession_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o he_o will_v not_o lose_v any_o part_n of_o his_o inheritance_n this_o argument_n be_v of_o sufficient_a strength_n to_o silence_v carnal_a reason_n if_o it_o be_v thorough_o weigh_v by_o we_o in_o the_o balance_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n for_o if_o a_o man_n look_v on_o himself_o as_o out_o of_o himself_o and_o the_o be_v which_o he_o have_v in_o the_o first_o adam_n and_o behold_v himself_o as_o one_o with_o the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o a_o spiritual_a oneness_n see_v himself_o as_o such_o a_o part_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o hand_n or_o a_o foot_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o body_n and_o know_v christ_n have_v undertake_v to_o provide_v for_o his_o body_n and_o to_o own_o it_o for_o his_o own_o this_o will_v establish_v he_o in_o a_o unshaken_a confidence_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n intend_v to_o raise_v his_o body_n and_o to_o
care_n of_o the_o bone_n of_o his_o saint_n and_o though_o the_o limb_n of_o their_o body_n be_v carry_v from_o one_o end_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o other_o and_o scatter_v in_o several_a place_n and_o climate_n yet_o by_o his_o power_n he_o will_v bring_v one_o limb_n to_o another_o therefore_o glorify_v christ_n in_o your_o body_n who_o have_v promise_v to_o quicken_v your_o mortal_a body_n by_o his_o spirit_n which_o he_o have_v give_v unto_o you_o rom._n 8.11_o in_o the_o next_o place_n another_o use_n may_v be_v this_o to_o make_v we_o willing_a to_o sacrifice_v our_o body_n for_o the_o maintain_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n if_o christ_n be_v please_v to_o call_v we_o to_o suffer_v for_o he_o we_o do_v not_o know_v but_o this_o point_n may_v be_v very_o seasonable_a we_o know_v not_o how_o soon_o christ_n may_v call_v for_o our_o body_n to_o lie_v in_o prison_n for_o some_o truth_n he_o have_v discover_v to_o we_o which_o he_o have_v not_o make_v know_v to_o other_o why_o shall_v we_o be_v unwilling_a that_o christ_n shall_v suffer_v in_o his_o own_o body_n consider_v that_o the_o body_n which_o shall_v lie_v in_o prison_n it_o be_v not_o thy_o body_n thou_o be_v not_o able_a to_o raise_v it_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n therefore_o if_o it_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o christ_n that_o this_o body_n shall_v lie_v in_o prison_n say_v not_o my_o will_n but_o thy_o will_n be_v do_v and_o if_o christ_n will_v lead_v thou_o further_o if_o he_o will_v not_o only_o lead_v thou_o to_o be_v imprison_v in_o thy_o body_n for_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o if_o he_o call_v thou_o to_o give_v up_o thy_o life_n to_o loose_v it_o for_o he_o that_o thou_o may_v find_v it_o again_o in_o he_o let_v this_o consideration_n make_v thou_o willing_a to_o be_v a_o martyr_n and_o sufferer_n for_o the_o lord_n christ_n why_o shall_v not_o he_o do_v what_o he_o will_v with_o his_o own_o if_o he_o will_v lead_v thou_o to_o a_o pillory_n to_o a_o hot_a iron_n to_o receive_v a_o mark_n in_o thy_o body_n for_o he_o to_o a_o halter_n fire_n and_o faggot_n be_v content_v and_o be_v confident_a that_o if_o christ_n ever_o call_v thou_o to_o suffer_v he_o will_v give_v thou_o power_n and_o strength_n for_o to_o suffer_v in_o thy_o body_n because_o he_o can_v forget_v to_o be_v mindful_a of_o his_o own_o body_n we_o know_v how_o christ_n threaten_v those_o that_o be_v ashamed_a of_o he_o and_o his_o word_n in_o a_o adulterous_a and_o sinful_a generation_n mark_v 8.38_o of_o he_o say_v he_o shall_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v ashamed_a when_o he_o shall_v come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n with_o power_n and_o great_a glory_n as_o christ_n will_v not_o own_o but_o be_v ashamed_a of_o wicked_a ungodly_a and_o unbelieving_a man_n that_o make_v profession_n of_o his_o name_n in_o word_n without_o his_o power_n in_o their_o heart_n so_o christ_n will_v own_v the_o body_n of_o his_o saint_n and_o such_o who_o true_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o have_v lay_v down_o their_o life_n for_o he_o and_o they_o shall_v find_v their_o life_n again_o at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a therefore_o let_v this_o make_v we_o willing_a to_o suffer_v i_o be_o the_o more_o willing_a to_o press_v this_o point_n because_o i_o see_v a_o spirit_n of_o baseness_n and_o cowardliness_n in_o christian_n i_o find_v not_o that_o courage_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o spirit_n of_o christian_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o they_o the_o complaint_n of_o jeremiah_n may_v just_o be_v take_v up_o in_o our_o time_n he_o say_v jer._n 9.3_o none_o be_v valiant_a for_o the_o truth_n there_o be_v scarce_o a_o man_n that_o appear_v for_o truth_n in_o the_o height_n of_o zeal_n man_n will_v rather_o sin_v against_o conscience_n to_o comply_v with_o the_o world_n then_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o world_n they_o will_v rather_o swim_v down_o with_o the_o tide_n and_o stream_n of_o the_o world_n then_o oppose_v the_o wicked_a stream_n of_o worldly_a corruption_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v that_o many_o professor_n have_v their_o eye_n so_o much_o upon_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n from_o this_o corruption_n and_o unsoundnesse_n in_o their_o heart_n they_o will_v be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n with_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n because_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v any_o thing_n for_o the_o lord_n they_o look_v on_o christ_n in_o their_o apprehension_n as_o precious_a but_o when_o they_o be_v tell_v of_o a_o crucify_a christ_n of_o a_o persecute_a christ_n of_o a_o christ_n hang_v on_o a_o tree_n a_o christ_n to_o be_v spit_v upon_o condemn_v and_o persecute_v to_o suffer_v in_o the_o world_n with_o the_o young_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n they_o go_v away_o sorrowful_a from_o such_o a_o sermon_n they_o will_v have_v christ_n and_o the_o world_n together_o but_o if_o they_o can_v have_v christ_n but_o they_o must_v leave_v the_o world_n they_o have_v rather_o part_v with_o christ_n then_o with_o the_o world_n they_o be_v like_o joseph_n of_o arimathea_n that_o take_v christ_n and_o leave_v the_o cross_n behind_o he_o so_o delicate_a professor_n in_o our_o time_n they_o will_v take_v christ_n but_o they_o will_v be_v sure_a to_o leave_v the_o cross_n they_o will_v be_v wise_a in_o their_o way_n they_o will_v profess_v religion_n no_o further_o than_o they_o may_v hold_v the_o world_n and_o religion_n together_o one_o reason_n of_o this_o cowardice_n and_o baseness_n of_o spirit_n be_v this_o because_o they_o do_v not_o confider_v that_o the_o body_n of_o saint_n be_v under_o the_o care_n and_o in_o the_o possession_n of_o jesus_n and_o that_o we_o can_v glorify_v god_n more_o than_o by_o lie_v in_o prison_n in_o love_n to_o christ_n or_o die_v for_o he_o if_o it_o be_v his_o pleasure_n to_o call_v we_o to_o seal_v his_o truth_n with_o cur_n blood_n and_o if_o we_o do_v confider_v what_o a_o holy_a flame_n and_o heavenly_a spark_n be_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o spirit_n of_o primitive_a christian_n in_o believe_v this_o truth_n that_o they_o account_v it_o their_o great_a honour_n to_o be_v dishonour_v for_o christ_n their_o great_a credit_n to_o be_v discredit_v by_o the_o world_n for_o he_o their_o liberty_n to_o be_v imprison_v their_o life_n to_o die_v at_o a_o stake_n for_o profess_v this_o glorious_a truth_n of_o christ_n discover_v to_o their_o soul_n phil._n 1.21_o it_o will_v put_v fire_n and_o spirit_n into_o we_o and_o this_o lethargy_n that_o be_v upon_o we_o will_v speedy_o be_v cure_v indeed_o we_o be_v a_o lukewarm_a people_n the_o discretion_n and_o prudence_n of_o politic_a professor_n in_o our_o time_n have_v swallow_v up_o zeal_n in_o the_o time_n of_o popery_n there_o be_v zeal_n without_o knowledge_n in_o this_o kingdom_n and_o now_o we_o have_v knowledge_n without_o zeal_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o this_o be_v this_o because_o either_o we_o do_v not_o meditate_v on_o this_o truth_n or_o else_o because_o we_o be_v rather_o cold_a and_o formal_a then_o true_o spiritual_a in_o the_o meditation_n of_o it_o which_o shall_v engage_v we_o as_o we_o tender_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v more_o frequent_a and_o serious_a in_o our_o contemplation_n concern_v it_o for_o the_o future_a i_o find_v that_o christian_n make_v much_o use_n of_o this_o point_n in_o former_a day_n though_o i_o do_v not_o whole_o justify_v their_o practice_n for_o as_o it_o be_v our_o custom_n to_o salute_v one_o another_o when_o we_o meet_v so_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o some_o christian_n when_o they_o meet_v one_o another_o to_o utter_v these_o word_n christus_fw-la resurrexit_fw-la christ_n be_v rise_v they_o apprehend_v it_o sa_o a_o point_n that_o come_v with_o such_o power_n on_o their_o spirit_n to_o enable_v they_o to_o be_v willing_a to_o suffer_v for_o the_o lord_n that_o this_o be_v their_o salutation_n in_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n assure_v themselves_o that_o he_o which_o be_v rise_v in_o his_o own_o person_n as_o head_n will_v arise_v in_o all_o saint_n as_o his_o member_n and_o this_o be_v that_o that_o make_v they_o so_o willing_a to_o jeopard_v their_o life_n for_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n we_o read_v of_o paul_n act._n 21.13_o that_o when_o they_o exhort_v he_o not_o to_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n because_o the_o spirit_n in_o agabus_n have_v make_v it_o know_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v persecute_v and_o bind_v when_o he_o come_v thither_o why_o do_v you_o weep_v and_o break_v my_o heart_n say_v he_o i_o be_o not_o only_o willing_a to_o be_v bind_v at_o jerusalem_n but_o to_o die_v there_o for_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n it_o be_v a_o heart-breaking_a to_o paul_n to_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v
may_v have_v knowledge_n enough_o to_o carry_v i_o to_o heaven_n yet_o i_o be_o very_o ignorant_a of_o many_o truth_n of_o christ_n thus_o a_o man_n that_o true_o live_v the_o life_n of_o faith_n he_o be_v not_o puff_v up_o as_o these_o be_v that_o fall_v to_o these_o hideous_a and_o blasphemous_a notion_n and_o opinion_n hab._n 2._o he_o that_o be_v lift_v up_o his_o heart_n be_v not_o upright_o but_o the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o his_o faith_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o familisticall_a spirit_n be_v puff_v up_o with_o a_o conceit_n of_o their_o knowledge_n notion_n and_o speculation_n when_o indeed_o they_o be_v whole_o carnal_a and_o understand_v not_o the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o the_o face_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o he_o that_o true_o walk_v with_o god_n faithful_o that_o man_n walk_v humble_o with_o his_o god_n true_a faith_n as_o it_o exalt_v we_o and_o show_v we_o our_o privilege_n and_o honour_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n so_o it_o humble_v we_o by_o the_o sight_n of_o what_o be_v in_o ourselves_o the_o light_n of_o grace_n will_v as_o well_o discover_v what_o we_o be_v in_o our_o fleshly_a part_n as_o what_o we_o be_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o these_o that_o be_v thus_o enlighten_v shall_v never_o fall_v total_o and_o final_o from_o the_o pure_a and_o simple_a gospel_n of_o christ_n the_o spirit_n in_o they_o do_v assure_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v abide_v in_o he_o john_n 2.27_o therefore_o beware_v of_o pride_n the_o bane_n of_o angel_n and_o the_o ruin_n of_o man_n and_o the_o mother_n of_o familisme_n but_o grow_v in_o humility_n conceit_n not_o that_o you_o be_v full_a when_o you_o be_v empty_a as_o long_o as_o the_o widow_n have_v empty_a vessel_n the_o oil_n do_v still_o run_v so_o as_o long_o as_o there_o be_v a_o empty_a vessel_n in_o thy_o heart_n the_o oil_n of_o grace_n shall_v flow_v in_o unto_o thou_o the_o four_o direction_n take_v heed_n that_o thou_o do_v not_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o free_a will_n and_o fall_v away_o from_o grace_n some_o of_o the_o familist_n of_o the_o city_n have_v be_v great_a stickler_n to_o uphold_v these_o point_n and_o to_o revive_v arminian_n tenet_n among_o professor_n before_o they_o do_v arrive_v to_o the_o top_n and_o height_n of_o familisme_n that_o man_n will_v not_o stand_v long_o who_o have_v no_o strength_n but_o his_o own_o leg_n to_o uphold_v he_o neither_o will_v that_o man_n stand_v long_o for_o christ_n who_o stand_v more_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o his_o own_o will_n then_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n grace_n adam_n stand_v in_o his_o own_o strength_n lose_v his_o happiness_n when_o he_o be_v wise_a and_o righteous_a and_o can_v thou_o maintain_v thyself_o in_o a_o happy_a condition_n by_o thy_o own_o strength_n when_o thou_o be_v unrighteous_a true_a saint_n be_v keep_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n 1_o pet._n 1.5_o the_o word_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v a_o keep_n of_o any_o thing_n as_o by_o a_o guard_n god_n grace_n be_v a_o guard_n by_o which_o he_o do_v keep_v all_o his_o in_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n so_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a they_o shall_v fall_v away_o from_o his_o grace_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n then_o if_o they_o fall_v away_o from_o grace_n to_o familisme_n who_o do_v maintain_v that_o saint_n may_v fall_v away_o from_o grace_n the_o fist_n direction_n be_v not_o loose_a or_o licentious_a in_o life_n or_o neglective_a of_o sanctification_n under_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o freegrace_n and_o justification_n many_o of_o the_o profess_a familist_n which_o we_o meet_v with_o have_v be_v loose_a professor_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n the_o libertine_n do_v live_v next_o door_n to_o the_o familist_n and_o libertinism_n be_v the_o broad_a road_n and_o highway_n or_o beaten-path_n to_o familisme_n last_o take_v heed_n of_o vain_a jangle_n and_o dispute_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n religion_n be_v more_o in_o practice_n than_o controversy_n or_o speculation_n be_v more_o conscientious_a to_o practice_v what_o thou_o know_v then_o curious_a in_o dispute_v about_o thing_n that_o thou_o know_v not_o and_o let_v thy_o ear_n be_v rather_o open_v to_o those_o that_o will_v instruct_v thou_o then_o to_o those_o that_o will_v dispute_v with_o thou_o the_o dispute_n and_o controversy_n of_o the_o time_n have_v make_v many_o atheist_n and_o familist_n in_o these_o time_n origen_n speak_v of_o these_o word_n in_o the_o 21._o exod._n 22._o if_o man_n strive_v and_o hurt_v a_o woman_n with_o child_n so_o that_o her_o fruit_n depart_v from_o she_o etc._n etc._n do_v thus_o allegorise_v they_o the_o woman_n with_o child_n say_v he_o be_v weak_a christian_n who_o be_v with_o child_n and_o ready_a to_o bring_v forth_o truth_n the_o man_n that_o strive_v be_v professor_n that_o with_o bitterness_n and_o violence_n do_v contend_v for_o their_o opinion_n and_o while_o they_o strive_v in_o heat_n and_o bitterness_n for_o their_o opinion_n the_o christian_n miscarry_v and_o do_v not_o bring_v forth_o truth_n how_o many_o who_o do_v seem_v to_o have_v christ_n almost_o form_v in_o they_o have_v miscarry_v and_o fall_v to_o familisme_n by_o the_o strive_n and_o contention_n of_o professor_n that_o thou_o may_v therefore_o learn_v wisdom_n by_o their_o folly_n and_o stand_v more_o steadfast_o by_o their_o fall_n treasure_v up_o the_o truth_n which_o have_v be_v deliver_v and_o imprint_v they_o upon_o your_o memory_n and_o because_o reason_n precept_n exhortation_n and_o rule_n do_v little_a advantage_n we_o to_o preserve_v we_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n without_o the_o power_n of_o he_o who_o be_v truth_n look_v unto_o he_o to_o preserve_v you_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o your_o union_n with_o himself_o and_o his_o father_n in_o the_o spirit_n and_o to_o ascertain_v you_o of_o your_o resurrection_n as_o part_v of_o his_o body_n and_o to_o enable_v you_o as_o his_o member_n to_o glorify_v he_o and_o his_o father_n in_o the_o spirit_n for_o evermore_o amen_n the_o great_a joy_n of_o saint_n in_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o resurrection_n sermon_n iii_o preach_v on_o a_o thanksgiving_n day_n isaiah_n 26.19_o awake_v and_o sing_v you_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o dust_n for_o thy_o dew_n be_v as_o the_o dew_n of_o herb_n and_o the_o earth_n shall_v cast_v forth_o her_o dead_a i_o have_v show_v unto_o you_o that_o these_o word_n be_v a_o present_a comfort_n or_o cordial_a give_v by_o god_n unto_o his_o people_n for_o the_o refreshment_n of_o their_o languish_a spirit_n and_o sad_a heart_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o affliction_n and_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v arise_v and_o that_o they_o shall_v arise_v as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n he_o be_v their_o head_n they_o shall_v rise_v as_o his_o member_n he_o die_v to_o bring_v his_o people_n to_o a_o spiritual_a oneness_n with_o himself_o and_o his_o father_n they_o be_v his_o possession_n and_o inheritance_n and_o as_o a_o body_n may_v proper_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o that_o soul_n which_o do_v inform_v it_o so_o christ_n shall_v be_v the_o spiritual_a form_n and_o soul_n to_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v raise_v at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o general_a resurrection_n by_o these_o and_o other_o spiritual_a consideration_n i_o do_v evidence_n this_o truth_n that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v raise_v as_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o their_o bless_a saviour_n my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o rise_v i_o shall_v now_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n brief_o open_a unto_o you_o the_o word_n that_o follow_v in_o the_o text_n and_o make_v choice_n of_o one_o proposition_n from_o they_o which_o may_v heighten_v your_o spiritual_a joy_n this_o day_n upon_o which_o i_o shall_v enlarge_v myself_o and_o so_o shall_v commend_v you_o and_o what_o i_o shall_v deliver_v to_o you_o to_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o almighty_a the_o next_o word_n which_o do_v present_v itself_o to_o we_o in_o the_o text_n be_v this_o awake_v which_o do_v afford_v we_o this_o observation_n that_o death_n be_v but_o a_o sleep_n it_o be_v night_n for_o a_o time_n with_o the_o saint_n while_o they_o sleep_v in_o their_o grave_n but_o they_o shall_v awake_v at_o the_o morning_n of_o the_o resurrection_n the_o grave_n be_v a_o bed_n of_o rest_n perfume_v and_o make_v sweet_a to_o all_o saint_n by_o the_o death_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v take_v away_o whatsoever_o be_v bitter_a and_o unpleasant_a in_o it_o it_o be_v no_o long_o a_o curse_n to_o the_o saint_n but_o rather_o a_o part_n of_o their_o happiness_n
know_v not_o whether_o i_o shall_v have_v a_o opportunity_n to_o speak_v to_o you_o again_o from_o these_o word_n and_o see_v i_o have_v handle_v the_o two_o former_a part_n in_o this_o place_n i_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o finish_v my_o discourse_n from_o this_o text_n among_o you_o another_o reason_n be_v because_o i_o do_v find_v some_o familisticall_a spirit_n here_o that_o be_v trouble_v with_o what_o i_o deliver_v be_v enemy_n to_o that_o christ_n who_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o die_v on_o the_o cross_n &_o be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o enemy_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n which_o be_v to_o be_v wrought_v by_o his_o power_n and_o that_o you_o may_v see_v how_o little_a i_o regard_v the_o speech_n of_o these_o enemy_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o glorious_a resurrection_n of_o saint_n i_o will_v not_o seem_v for_o their_o sake_n to_o desert_n my_o discourse_n therefore_o i_o do_v resolve_v to_o go_v on_o with_o it_o this_o day_n then_o three_o i_o apprehend_v it_o may_v much_o further_o the_o work_n of_o the_o day_n for_o if_o we_o have_v remember_v god_n aright_o in_o our_o praise_n have_v make_v mention_n of_o his_o goodness_n to_o the_o land_n and_o nation_n we_o have_v do_v it_o spiritual_o and_o have_v more_o rejoice_v in_o spiritual_a then_o temporal_a mercy_n and_o if_o our_o joy_n shall_v end_v in_o rejoice_v only_o for_o temporal_a mercy_n we_o shall_v rejoice_v rather_o carnal_o then_o spiritual_o therefore_o have_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o day_n rejoice_v for_o the_o mercy_n that_o god_n have_v show_v to_o the_o land_n i_o think_v i_o shall_v do_v well_o if_o i_o raise_v you_o in_o your_o spirit_n by_o what_o i_o shall_v speak_v from_o these_o word_n and_o from_o the_o sight_n of_o nationall_n mercy_n and_o temporal_a deliverance_n take_v occasion_n to_o draw_v your_o eye_n to_o behold_v by_o faith_n how_o you_o and_o all_o saint_n shall_v rejoice_v when_o you_o be_v deliver_v from_o all_o enemy_n at_o the_o resurrection_n that_o so_o i_o may_v sublimate_v your_o joy_n by_o carry_v you_o high_o in_o the_o spirit_n to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o spiritual_a thing_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o text_n awake_v and_o sing_v you_o know_v we_o express_v our_o joy_n by_o sing_v as_o we_o may_v gather_v from_o that_o place_n psal_n 126.1_o when_o the_o lord_n turn_v again_o the_o captivity_n of_o zion_n we_o be_v like_o they_o that_o dream_n then_o be_v our_o mouth_n fill_v with_o laughter_n and_o our_o tongue_n with_o sing_v sing_v in_o scripture_n be_v a_o expression_n of_o great_a joy_n if_o any_o be_v merry_a let_v he_o sing_v say_v james_n so_o my_o evangelicall_n prophet_n to_o show_v what_o great_a joy_n there_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o resurrection_n when_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v raise_v he_o bid_v we_o awake_a and_o sing_v so_o that_o this_o be_v the_o point_n there_o will_v be_v great_a joy_n at_o the_o resurrection_n for_o the_o amplify_a of_o which_o point_n i_o shall_v show_v you_o what_o cause_n of_o rejoice_v there_o will_v be_v at_o the_o resurrection_n the_o spirit_n and_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n will_v then_o be_v reunite_v together_o again_o which_o be_v disunite_v for_o many_o year_n and_o as_o the_o spirit_n do_v with_o some_o regret_n grief_n and_o unwillingness_n leave_v the_o body_n have_v a_o natural_a desire_n and_o appetite_n be_v plant_v into_o it_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o creator_n after_o union_n with_o the_o body_n so_o the_o spirit_n can_v but_o rejoice_v when_o it_o be_v unite_v again_o to_o the_o body_n therefore_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o spirit_n of_o saint_n under_o the_o altar_n in_o the_o revelation_n 6.10_o cry_v how_o long_o holy_a and_o true_a intimate_v their_o desire_n to_o be_v reunite_v to_o their_o body_n and_o in_o 2_o cor._n 5.4_o the_o apostle_n there_o show_v we_o that_o though_o the_o saint_n be_v willing_a to_o live_v with_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o unwillingness_n in_o they_o to_o leave_v their_o body_n therefore_o they_o have_v rather_o have_v immortality_n swallow_v up_o of_o life_n then_o to_o lay_v down_o their_o body_n in_o the_o grave_n if_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n we_o that_o be_v in_o this_o tabernacle_n say_v he_o groan_n be_v burden_a not_o for_o that_o we_o will_v be_v unclothe_v but_o clothe_v upon_o that_o mortality_n may_v be_v swallow_v up_o of_o life_n there_o seem_v in_o these_o word_n to_o be_v hold_v forth_o a_o unwillingnes_n in_o the_o saint_n to_o be_v unclothe_v of_o their_o body_n to_o put_v off_o the_o clothing_n of_o the_o flesh_n we_o observe_v in_o philosophy_n that_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a appetite_n in_o the_o soul_n or_o form_n to_o be_v unite_v to_o that_o body_n that_o it_o once_o inform_v and_o as_o it_o leave_v the_o body_n with_o some_o unwillingness_n so_o there_o be_v a_o desire_n of_o reunion_n when_o they_o be_v part_v so_o that_o reunion_n will_v be_v a_o cause_n of_o joy_n for_o as_o there_o be_v joy_n at_o the_o meeting_n of_o friend_n so_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n that_o be_v long_o together_o in_o this_o world_n shall_v rejoice_v when_o they_o shall_v meet_v together_o again_o this_o be_v one_o ground_n of_o joy_n from_o their_o meeting_n the_o body_n and_o the_o spirit_n shall_v meet_v together_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o reunion_n after_o there_o have_v be_v a_o disunion_n between_o they_o but_o in_o the_o next_o place_n there_o will_v be_v a_o cause_n of_o great_a joy_n because_o there_o will_v be_v a_o absolute_a perfection_n both_o in_o the_o body_n and_o in_o the_o soul_n god_n shall_v be_v perfection_n in_o the_o spirit_n in_o every_o faculty_n of_o it_o and_o god_n in_o his_o glory_n shall_v dwell_v likewise_o in_o the_o body_n the_o soul_n shall_v be_v full_a of_o god_n here_o we_o have_v but_o a_o imperfect_a knowledge_n of_o god_n there_o the_o soul_n shall_v be_v free_a from_o all_o ignorance_n have_v the_o full_a vision_n of_o god_n here_o we_o see_v as_o in_o a_o glass_n dark_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d enigmatical_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v there_o we_o shall_v see_v face_n to_o face_n here_o we_o do_v but_o as_o it_o be_v see_v the_o back_n part_n of_o god_n with_o moses_n as_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n in_o state_n use_v to_o keep_v themselves_o from_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o people_n god_n do_v as_o it_o be_v hide_v his_o face_n here_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o full_a discovery_n which_o he_o will_v make_v of_o himself_o hereafter_o we_o do_v but_o sip_v of_o the_o cup_n of_o spiritual_a joy_n here_o but_o there_o we_o shall_v be_v fill_v with_o the_o river_n of_o the_o pleasure_n of_o god_n here_o we_o have_v as_o austin_n say_v guttulas_fw-la but_o little_a drop_n of_o joy_n but_o there_o we_o shall_v be_v fill_v with_o joy_n here_o we_o have_v a_o sight_n of_o god_n which_o do_v not_o full_o satisfy_v but_o still_o we_o desire_v to_o know_v more_o of_o god_n and_o more_o of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o there_o we_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o likeness_n of_o god_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v col._n 3._o v._n 4._o when_o christ_n which_o be_v our_o life_n shall_v appear_v than_o we_o also_o shall_v appear_v with_o he_o in_o glory_n the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o joh._n 3.2_o yet_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v it_o be_v not_o evident_a to_o we_o what_o glory_n there_o shall_v be_v in_o our_o understanding_n how_o our_o affection_n shall_v be_v ravish_v and_o enamour_v with_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n it_o do_v not_o appear_v what_o shall_v be_v in_o our_o spirit_n but_o we_o know_v that_o when_o be_v shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o for_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v o_o what_o tongue_n of_o rhetoric_n can_v express_v this_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v like_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v there_o be_v more_o in_o it_o then_o the_o eloquence_n of_o angel_n can_v set_v forth_o unto_o you_o as_o they_o shall_v have_v such_o unspeakable_a glory_n in_o their_o spirit_n so_o likewise_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o glory_n on_o their_o body_n alas_o our_o body_n now_o be_v but_o vile_a body_n weak_a body_n but_o what_o say_v the_o apostle_n phil._n 3._o ult_n god_n shall_v change_v our_o vile_a body_n and_o make_v they_o like_o his_o glorious_a body_n or_o to_o his_o body_n of_o glory_n for_o so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o original_n as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n at_o his_o transfiguration_n be_v change_v and_o his_o face_n do_v shine_v and_o his_o whole_a body_n do_v shine_v with_o heavenly_a brightness_n and_o celestial_a
glory_n so_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v body_n of_o glory_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o heavenly_a brightness_n on_o they_o therefore_o daniel_n speak_v of_o the_o saint_n at_o the_o resurrection_n he_o say_v dan._n 12.3_o that_o they_o that_o be_v wise_a shall_v shine_v as_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o firmament_n and_o they_o that_o turn_v many_o to_o righteousness_n as_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n as_o the_o star_n be_v glorious_a creature_n and_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o firmament_n be_v a_o great_a glory_n to_o our_o eye_n so_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o celestial_a star-like_a glory_n upon_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v gross_a lumpish_a and_o heavy_a body_n as_o they_o be_v now_o but_o spiritual_a body_n as_o swift_a as_o a_o seraphim_n the_o body_n be_v now_o a_o clog_n and_o weight_n to_o the_o soul_n it_o be_v ergastulum_fw-la animae_fw-la as_o the_o platonist_n say_v it_o keep_v the_o spirit_n under_o and_o press_v it_o down_o with_o the_o weight_n of_o it_o but_o then_o the_o body_n shall_v be_v a_o spiritual_a body_n so_o that_o in_o this_o body_n the_o saint_n shall_v ascend_v into_o the_o air_n as_o in_o a_o chariot_n of_o triumph_n and_o glory_n to_o meet_v the_o lord_n jesus_n as_o elias_n be_v carry_v up_o to_o heaven_n so_o shall_v the_o saint_n in_o these_o body_n of_o they_o rise_v in_o glory_n to_o meet_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o air_n now_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o disease_n then_o they_o shall_v be_v free_v from_o all_o disease_n now_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o death_n then_o death_n shall_v be_v swallow_v up_o and_o every_o saint_n in_o his_o own_o person_n shall_v appear_v as_o a_o conqueror_n of_o death_n and_o of_o the_o grave_n every_o saint_n shall_v have_v this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o song_n of_o triumph_n in_o his_o mouth_n o_o death_n where_o be_v thy_o sting_n o_o grave_n where_o be_v thy_o victory_n the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v sin_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o law_n but_o thanks_o be_v unto_o god_n who_o have_v give_v we_o the_o victory_n through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n our_o body_n then_o shall_v be_v incorruptible_a whole_o like_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o the_o body_n it_o must_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d phil._n 3._o last_o conformable_a in_o likeness_n to_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o you_o see_v what_o perfection_n there_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n though_o they_o be_v vile_a now_o they_o shall_v be_v honourable_a and_o glorious_a then_o though_o they_o be_v now_o as_o piece_n of_o earth_n they_o shall_v be_v then_o more_o bright_a than_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n or_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o firmament_n this_o glory_n god_n will_v put_v upon_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o be_v thus_o make_v happy_a in_o their_o body_n and_o spirit_n when_o they_o shall_v see_v themselves_o in_o this_o happy_a condition_n fill_v in_o their_o body_n and_o spirit_n with_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n it_o can_v but_o cause_v great_a joy_n if_o a_o man_n lie_v sick_a a_o long_a while_n and_o have_v a_o weak_a distemper_a crazy_a body_n when_o he_o be_v restore_v he_o rejoice_v that_o he_o have_v health_n and_o strength_n and_o be_v free_v from_o the_o weakness_n that_o be_v upon_o he_o shall_v not_o there_o be_v great_a joy_n then_o when_o the_o saint_n shall_v rise_v when_o they_o that_o have_v weak_a crazy_a and_o vile_a mortal_a body_n here_o shall_v see_v themselves_o in_o body_n of_o glory_n in_o body_n as_o glorious_a as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n again_o there_o will_v be_v great_a cause_n of_o joy_n to_o these_o saint_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v thus_o unite_v in_o their_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o shall_v meet_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n because_o they_o shall_v have_v great_a dignity_n put_v upon_o their_o person_n they_o shall_v be_v raise_v as_o no_o mean_a person_n as_o wicked_a ungodly_a and_o unbelieving_a man_n shall_v be_v raise_v as_o slave_n and_o vassal_n and_o be_v bring_v forth_o in_o chain_n and_o fetter_n before_o the_o dreadful_a tribunal_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n so_o the_o saint_n shall_v all_o come_v forth_o as_o king_n every_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v dignify_v with_o the_o glory_n and_o majesty_n of_o a_o king_n this_o be_v that_o that_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o revelation_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n have_v make_v we_o king_n and_o priest_n and_o we_o shall_v reign_v upon_o earth_n we_o shall_v reign_v in_o our_o body_n as_o a_o ambassador_n say_v of_o the_o senate_n of_o rome_n that_o he_o apprehend_v that_o there_o be_v as_o many_o king_n as_o senator_n in_o the_o senate-house_n quot_fw-la senateres_fw-la tot_fw-la reges_fw-la so_o there_o shall_v be_v as_o many_o king_n as_o saint_n at_o the_o resurrection_n and_o every_o one_o shall_v have_v kingly_a glory_n and_o majesty_n every_o one_o together_o with_o the_o lord_n jesus_n reign_v as_o a_o king_n upon_o the_o earth_n rev._n 5.10_o therefore_o if_o man_n rejoice_v in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o earthly_a kingdom_n and_o crown_n which_o be_v line_v with_o care_n that_o a_o king_n profess_v that_o if_o man_n know_v the_o trouble_n which_o attend_v upon_o a_o crown_n no_o man_n will_v stoop_v to_o who_o it_o up_o what_o joy_n will_v there_o be_v when_o we_o shall_v reign_v as_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a king_n with_o the_o lord_n jesus_n again_o there_o will_v be_v great_a joy_n because_o all_o thing_n that_o may_v occasion_v any_o sorrow_n or_o sadness_n shall_v be_v quite_o remove_v away_o all_o tear_n must_v then_o be_v wipe_v from_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n rev._n 7.17_o there_o must_v be_v no_o more_o sigh_v no_o more_o grief_n no_o more_o sorrow_n all_o earthly_a infirmity_n and_o weakness_n which_o be_v accompany_v with_o grief_n and_o pain_n shall_v be_v remove_v for_o our_o body_n shall_v be_v celestial_a body_n 1_o cor._n 15.40_o raise_v up_o in_o incorruption_n 1_o cor._n 15.42_o and_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o blindness_n or_o blackness_n upon_o our_o spirit_n here_o so_o long_o as_o we_o carry_v sin_n about_o we_o though_o we_o know_v it_o be_v pardon_v though_o we_o know_v it_o shall_v be_v remember_v no_o more_o heb._n 8.12_o though_o we_o know_v in_o point_n of_o justification_n that_o it_o may_v be_v seek_v for_o and_o can_v be_v find_v jer._n 50.20_o yet_o so_o long_o as_o we_o feel_v it_o oppose_v the_o spirit_n of_o glory_n and_o holiness_n in_o we_o by_o the_o filthy_a nature_n of_o it_o so_o long_o it_o will_v occasion_v sorrow_n grief_n and_o some_o trouble_n to_o the_o soul_n but_o at_o the_o general_a resurrection_n as_o sin_n be_v now_o complete_o take_v away_o in_o our_o justification_n to_o those_o that_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n such_o be_v those_o bless_a one_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o 32._o psal_n who_o iniquity_n be_v forgive_v and_o who_o sin_n be_v cover_v so_o then_o sin_n shall_v be_v whole_o take_v away_o to_o our_o own_o sense_n feeling_n and_o apprehension_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o corner_n then_o in_o the_o soul_n spirit_n or_o body_n for_o any_o lust_n or_o uncleanness_n and_o consequent_o no_o place_n for_o sorrow_n sin_n be_v like_o the_o evil_a spirit_n that_o possess_v saul_n that_o make_v he_o melancholy_a and_o sad_a and_o afflict_v he_o in_o his_o spirit_n but_o when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v appear_v than_o all_o sin_n shall_v be_v do_v away_o to_o our_o sense_n and_o feeling_n as_o it_o be_v do_v away_o now_o in_o our_o justification_n then_o we_o shall_v be_v as_o perfect_o sanctify_v throughout_o both_o in_o body_n and_o spirit_n as_o we_o be_v now_o perfect_o justify_v now_o the_o life_n that_o we_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v by_o faith_n in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o see_v how_o complete_o we_o be_v justify_v from_o sin_n lust_n corruption_n those_o enemy_n to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o we_o carry_v in_o our_o bosom_n but_o then_o we_o shall_v be_v as_o perfect_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o life_n of_o sanctification_n as_o we_o be_v now_o perfect_a and_o complete_a in_o respect_n of_o our_o justification_n so_o that_o the_o cause_n of_o sorrow_n and_o trouble_n shall_v quite_o be_v take_v away_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o place_n then_o leave_v for_o evangelicall_n sorrow_n the_o sorrow_n that_o now_o be_v wrought_v in_o the_o saint_n be_v evangelicall_n not_o legal_a but_o the_o joy_n and_o glory_n which_o do_v remain_v for_o the_o saint_n hereafter_o shall_v be_v so_o great_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o
place_n then_o leave_v for_o evangelicall_n grief_n for_o any_o sin_n that_o we_o have_v commit_v and_o as_o sin_n shall_v not_o then_o bring_v any_o sorrow_n upon_o we_o so_o neither_o shall_v the_o devil_n who_o be_v the_o troubler_n of_o the_o israel_n of_o god_n be_v able_a to_o afflict_v we_o here_o he_o be_v permit_v to_o afflict_v we_o as_o he_o do_v job_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o patience_n and_o though_o for_o the_o present_a when_o we_o look_v on_o christ_n in_o his_o person_n we_o see_v that_o we_o be_v conqueror_n over_o the_o devil_n in_o he_o yet_o we_o meet_v with_o the_o devil_n his_o fiery_a temptation_n dart_n and_o arrow_n which_o he_o shoot_v into_o our_o spirit_n so_o that_o he_o ofttimes_o cause_v we_o to_o walk_v something_o sad_o occasion_v trouble_n which_o i_o call_v tempestates_fw-la mentis_fw-la the_o tempest_n of_o the_o mind_n as_o paul_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v buffet_v by_o the_o messenger_n of_o satan_n but_o then_o this_o wicked_a fiend_n shall_v be_v so_o chain_v up_o that_o he_o shall_v never_o be_v let_v loose_a upon_o we_o again_o then_o he_o shall_v be_v so_o under_o our_o foot_n that_o he_o shall_v never_o have_v any_o liberty_n give_v he_o to_o tempt_v we_o any_o more_o the_o accuser_n of_o the_o brethren_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o heaven_n revelation_n 12.10_o his_o accusation_n and_o complaint_n against_o they_o can_v be_v hear_v by_o the_o ear_n of_o god_n to_o prejudice_v their_o justification_n but_o he_o do_v persecute_v the_o woman_n upon_o the_o earth_n rev._n 12.13_o he_o afflict_v the_o church_n and_o bring_v much_o trouble_n ofttimes_o to_o the_o saint_n but_o at_o the_o general_a resurrection_n we_o shall_v be_v free_v whole_o from_o the_o devil_n from_o all_o temptation_n from_o all_o trouble_n all_o enemy_n that_o can_v be_v think_v upon_o so_o that_o then_o thing_n shall_v be_v full_o accomplish_v and_o complete_v for_o our_o good_a the_o apostle_n though_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o christ_n for_o the_o present_a have_v abolish_v death_n and_o sin_n to_o we_o 2_o tim._n 1.10_o and_o destroy_v he_o who_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n who_o be_v the_o devil_n heb._n 2.14_o yet_o he_o inform_v we_o that_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n make_v to_o we_o in_o christ_n be_v not_o full_o accomplish_v complete_v and_o perfect_v till_o the_o resurrection_n as_o we_o may_v see_v by_o that_o place_n 1_o cor._n 15.54_o then_o shall_v be_v fulfil_v that_o say_n speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n day_n death_n be_v swallow_v up_o in_o victory_n than_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v o_o death_n where_o be_v thy_o sting_n o_o grave_n where_o be_v thy_o victory_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d then_o shall_v it_o be_v that_o be_v it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o full_a accomplishment_n we_o have_v now_o what_o be_v there_o promise_v in_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n then_o we_o shall_v have_v what_o be_v in_o the_o promise_n in_o the_o actual_a fruition_n of_o the_o thing_n promise_v so_o that_o in_o this_o respect_n there_o will_v be_v great_a joy_n because_o then_o every_o saint_n shall_v ride_v in_o a_o chariot_n of_o triumph_n as_o a_o conqueror_n of_o all_o enemy_n in_o his_o own_o person_n and_o as_o christ_n in_o his_o own_o body_n and_o spirit_n do_v ride_v to_o heaven_n and_o triumph_v over_o the_o power_n of_o hell_n death_n sin_n curse_n and_o condemnation_n and_o as_o the_o life_n that_o we_o live_v for_o the_o present_a be_v by_o behold_v this_o victory_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n so_o at_o the_o general_a resurrection_n all_o the_o saint_n shall_v imitate_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o in_o their_o own_o person_n shall_v ride_v as_o conqueror_n triumph_v over_o all_o enemy_n and_o shall_v live_v the_o life_n of_o vision_n see_v the_o same_o thing_n do_v in_o their_o own_o person_n which_o now_o by_o faith_n they_o see_v do_v for_o they_o in_o the_o person_n of_o jesus_n so_o that_o all_o cause_n and_o occasion_n of_o trouble_n and_o sorrow_n be_v take_v away_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v great_a joy_n at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o those_o who_o be_v raise_v by_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o next_o place_n as_o the_o occasion_n and_o cause_n of_o all_o sorrow_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o so_o likewise_o all_o thing_n all_o object_n that_o may_v move_v spiritual_a joy_n shall_v be_v present_v to_o the_o saint_n to_o raise_v their_o spirit_n to_o a_o spiritual_a joy_n who_o shall_v be_v raise_v and_o make_v happy_a with_o the_o lord_n jesus_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v that_o can_v be_v think_v upon_o that_o can_v make_v any_o one_o happy_a that_o the_o saint_n shall_v enjoy_v they_o shall_v enjoy_v god_n in_o a_o full_a measure_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n sweet_a stream_n of_o joy_n will_v flow_v into_o their_o spirit_n because_o god_n will_v make_v himself_o the_o author_n and_o worker_n of_o their_o joy_n sing_v o_o daughter_n of_o zion_n say_v the_o prophet_n zeph._n 3.14_o be_v glad_a and_o rejoice_v o_o daughter_n of_o jerusalem_n but_o why_o must_v zion_n sing_v and_o shout_n behold_v the_o reason_n in_o the_o 15._o verse_n the_o lord_n be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o thou_o and_o in_o the_o 17._o ver_fw-la he_o will_v rejoice_v over_o thou_o with_o sing_v there_o be_v the_o chief_a ground_n of_o their_o joy_n lay_v down_o so_o the_o 12._o of_o neh._n 43._o it_o be_v say_v the_o people_n rejoice_v for_o god_n make_v they_o rejoice_v with_o great_a joy_n so_o at_o the_o resurrection_n god_n shall_v make_v they_o to_o rejoice_v they_o shall_v be_v always_o then_o at_o the_o fountain_n at_o the_o wellhead_n in_o thy_o presence_n be_v fullness_n of_o joy_n at_o thy_o right_a hand_n say_v the_o psalmist_n psal_n 17.11_o there_o be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o all_o the_o saint_n shall_v then_o be_v in_o the_o presence_n and_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n where_o there_o shall_v be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o they_o all_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n god_n shall_v empty_v himself_o and_o the_o river_n and_o stream_n of_o joy_n which_o be_v in_o himself_o into_o their_o heart_n and_o spirit_n so_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v swallow_v up_o into_o those_o stream_n and_o river_n of_o joy_n and_o pleasure_n which_o be_v in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o a_o god_n macarius_n speak_v of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o ebriety_n of_o the_o spirit_n they_o then_o shall_v be_v inebriate_v with_o the_o fullness_n of_o a_o spiritual_a joy_n if_o there_o be_v such_o rejoice_v here_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o saint_n when_o he_o have_v a_o light_n from_o god_n to_o see_v something_o of_o god_n in_o the_o face_n of_o christ_n what_o spiritual_a joy_n shall_v there_o be_v when_o our_o joy_n shall_v be_v at_o the_o full_a if_o there_o be_v such_o joy_n in_o the_o ebb_a of_o the_o spirit_n here_o what_o joy_n will_v there_o be_v when_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o high-tyde_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o vision_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o glory_n hereafter_o when_o we_o shall_v eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n when_o we_o shall_v drink_v our_o fill_n of_o those_o river_n of_o pleasure_n which_o run_v in_o the_o paradise_n of_o god_n and_o if_o there_o be_v so_o much_o sweetness_n in_o spiritual_a joy_n here_o what_o tongue_n can_v express_v or_o heart_n conceive_v what_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o that_o joy_n that_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o great_a glorious_a and_o high_a be_v the_o expression_n by_o which_o saint_n do_v set_v forth_o the_o joy_n that_o they_o feel_v here_o but_o no_o saint_n can_v tell_v what_o the_o joy_n shall_v be_v hereafter_o at_o the_o resurrection_n psal_n 94.19_o in_o the_o multitude_n of_o my_o thought_n within_o i_o thy_o comfort_n delight_v my_o soul_n the_o delight_n be_v such_o here_o that_o david_n have_v rather_o have_v the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n in_o a_o spirit_n of_o joy_n upon_o he_o then_o to_o enjoy_v all_o the_o glory_n and_o great_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n thou_o have_v put_v great_a joy_n into_o my_o heart_n then_o when_o the_o corn_n and_o wine_n of_o wicked_a man_n be_v increase_v psal_n 4._o and_o in_o psal_n 84._o one_o day_n in_o thy_o house_n be_v worth_a a_o thousand_o if_o there_o be_v such_o joy_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n here_o in_o the_o behold_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o the_o kiss_n of_o his_o mouth_n in_o the_o embrace_n of_o his_o son_n when_o he_o do_v now_o sprinkle_v we_o with_o his_o grace_n o_o what_o joy_n shall_v there_o be_v when_o god_n shall_v pour_v out_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o sweetness_n into_o our_o soul_n when_o he_o shall_v open_v all_o the_o treasure_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o love_n when_o
he_o shall_v more_o free_o and_o full_o show_v we_o the_o thing_n that_o neither_o eye_n have_v see_v nor_o ear_n have_v hear_v neither_o have_v it_o enter_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n to_o conceive_v what_o they_o be_v 1_o cor._n 2._o we_o have_v see_v great_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n crown_n sceptre_n riches_n worldly_a pomp_n and_o glory_n but_o what_o be_v all_o these_o thing_n they_o do_v not_o shadow_v forth_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o see_v here_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o shall_v more_o plain_o see_v hereafter_o our_o fancy_n and_o imagination_n work_v beyond_o our_o eye_n we_o fancy_v great_a thing_n than_o we_o behold_v but_o what_o eye_n have_v not_o see_v nor_o ear_n have_v hear_v nor_o have_v it_o enter_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n to_o conceive_v what_o they_o be_v we_o dark_o see_v here_o and_o shall_v full_o enjoy_v hereafter_o the_o poet_n in_o their_o fancy_n have_v fancy_v golden_a mountain_n and_o great_a thing_n the_o earth_n do_v not_o afford_v such_o thing_n as_o they_o have_v fancy_v and_o mint_v in_o their_o poetical_a brain_n but_o the_o thing_n that_o shall_v then_o be_v discover_v to_o we_o go_v beyond_o the_o cogitation_n and_o thought_n and_o working_n of_o man_n heart_n and_o spirit_n and_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v glorious_o reveal_v to_o we_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o the_o spirit_n shall_v show_v we_o that_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v we_o we_o shall_v see_v god_n we_o and_o christ_n we_o and_o all_o the_o glory_n of_o heaven_n we_o and_o see_v ourselves_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n so_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v the_o presence_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o shall_v make_v we_o happy_a the_o confluence_n of_o all_o good_a thing_n that_o can_v bring_v any_o bliss_n tranquillity_n and_o joy_n to_o the_o spirit_n and_o soul_n of_o man_n so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a there_o will_v be_v great_a joy_n if_o we_o consider_v that_o there_o will_v be_v every_o thing_n want_v that_o may_v make_v we_o sorrowful_a and_o every_o thing_n present_a that_o may_v make_v we_o joyful_a there_o will_v be_v the_o absence_n of_o all_o evil_a and_o the_o presence_n of_o all_o good_a there_o will_v be_v god_n himself_o who_o be_v the_o summum_fw-la bonum_fw-la the_o chief_a good_a and_o this_o god_n will_v unveil_v himself_o and_o show_v forth_o his_o love_n and_o shine_v forth_o in_o his_o glory_n beauty_n and_o excellency_n on_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o people_n and_o see_v themselves_o in_o this_o happy_a and_o blissful_a condition_n they_o can_v but_o sing_v and_o rejoice_v at_o the_o resurrection_n here_o the_o saint_n in_o believe_v do_v rejoice_v with_o joy_n unspeakable_a and_o full_a of_o glory_n 1_o pet._n 1.8_o how_o glorious_a then_o and_o unspeakable_a will_v be_v the_o joy_n of_o the_o resurrection_n again_o you_o may_v take_v notice_n that_o there_o will_v be_v cause_n of_o great_a joy_n if_o you_o confider_v that_o all_o the_o joy_n which_o we_o have_v here_o be_v but_o a_o shadow_n of_o that_o joy_n which_o the_o saint_n shall_v have_v hereafter_o nay_o all_o the_o joy_n in_o the_o world_n here_o can_v shadow_v forth_o that_o joy_n that_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o consider_v for_o what_o man_n do_v rejoice_v here_o and_o you_o shall_v see_v that_o they_o have_v the_o same_o cause_n to_o rejoice_v for_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o a_o full_a manner_n hereafter_o the_o resurrection_n day_n be_v the_o saint_n coronation_n day_n and_o their_o wedding-day_n rev._n 19.7_o let_v we_o be_v glad_a and_o rejoice_v and_o give_v honour_n to_o he_o for_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o lamb_n be_v come_v and_o his_o wife_n have_v make_v herself_o ready_a it_o be_v god_n and_o their_o harvest_n day_n among_o man_n the_o time_n of_o harvest_n be_v a_o time_n of_o joy_n they_o shall_v rejoice_v before_o thou_o according_a to_o the_o joy_n of_o harvest_n isa_n 9.3_o the_o resurrection_n be_v god_n harvest_n for_o the_o gather_n in_o of_o saint_n when_o a_o man_n sow_n his_o seed_n he_o sow_n it_o in_o expectation_n of_o a_o harvest_n so_o god_n sow_n his_o seed_n he_o sow_n the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o the_o earth_n he_o lay_v they_o in_o the_o surrowe_n he_o do_v it_o in_o expectation_n of_o a_o harvest_n and_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v command_v to_o rejoice_v before_o he_o in_o the_o time_n of_o harvest_n which_o do_v typify_v the_o spiritual_a joy_n that_o the_o saint_n shall_v enjoy_v at_o the_o general_a resurrection_n which_o shall_v be_v their_o harvest_n when_o their_o body_n shall_v spring_v and_o come_v out_o of_o the_o dust_n in_o their_o glory_n and_o excellency_n again_o that_o i_o may_v bring_v you_o back_o to_o remember_v what_o the_o work_n of_o the_o day_n be_v and_o enlarge_v myself_o upon_o that_o at_o which_o i_o point_v even_o now_o we_o know_v that_o we_o use_v to_o have_v great_a joy_n for_o great_a deliverance_n when_o god_n have_v suffer_v we_o even_o to_o come_v to_o the_o brink_n of_o ruin_n and_o destruction_n and_o then_o do_v pull_v we_o from_o it_o and_o save_v we_o there_o be_v joy_n with_o shout_v we_o know_v how_o near_o we_o be_v to_o ruin_v we_o have_v almost_o be_v destroy_v by_o the_o enemy_n that_o rise_v up_o against_o we_o but_o the_o lord_n have_v deliver_v we_o and_o serious_o consider_v this_o deliverance_n we_o can_v but_o be_v thankful_a and_o joyful_a for_o the_o mercy_n and_o our_o joy_n for_o the_o mercy_n of_o this_o day_n may_v imperfect_o shadow_v forth_o and_o represent_v unto_o you_o the_o joy_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o saint_n at_o the_o resurrection_n for_o we_o that_o be_v compass_v about_o with_o so_o many_o enemy_n in_o the_o world_n that_o have_v all_o the_o devil_n in_o hell_n against_o we_o and_o all_o the_o wicked_a man_n in_o the_o world_n hold_v forth_o their_o hand_n to_o draw_v we_o and_o lead_v we_o into_o the_o broad_a way_n that_o lead_v to_o destruction_n and_o a_o base_a malignant_a party_n that_o we_o carry_v about_o we_o within_o ourselves_o join_v with_o the_o devil_n the_o world_n &_o wicked_a man_n against_o ourselves_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n shall_v we_o be_v preserve_v from_o all_o these_o enemy_n and_o make_v more_o than_o conqueror_n over_o all_o our_o enemy_n through_o jesus_n christ_n that_o love_v we_o and_o so_o shall_v have_v cause_n to_o rejoice_v in_o our_o preservation_n and_o deliverance_n true_o we_o be_v not_o able_a full_o to_o apprehend_v our_o deliverance_n here_o and_o that_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o saint_n rejoice_v so_o little_a in_o the_o god_n of_o grace_n and_o his_o mercy_n we_o can_v apprehend_v full_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v free_v from_o sin_n that_o have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o hell_n we_o apprehend_v not_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v in_o the_o hand_n and_o jaw_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n and_o then_o to_o be_v pull_v out_o of_o his_o hand_n and_o jaw_n by_o christ_n as_o david_n recover_v his_o lamb_n out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lion_n 1_o sam._n 17.34_o we_o do_v not_o apprehend_v what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v by_o nature_n child_n of_o wrath_n and_o yet_o to_o be_v crown_v with_o grace_n glory_n and_o immortality_n through_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n but_o then_o we_o shall_v full_o apprehend_v our_o great_a deliverance_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o lamb_n and_o shall_v sing_v for_o joy_n in_o the_o 15._o of_o the_o rev._n the_o 3._o it_o be_v say_v of_o saint_n that_o they_o sing_v the_o song_n of_o moses_n we_o sing_v it_o here_o in_o the_o spirit_n in_o part_n believe_v with_o zacharias_n that_o we_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o enemy_n but_o then_o we_o shall_v sing_v it_o full_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o spiritual_a joy_n it_o be_v call_v the_o song_n of_o moses_n because_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o song_n for_o their_o deliverance_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o all_o enemy_n as_o moses_n when_o the_o israelite_n be_v deliver_v from_o egypt_n call_v the_o people_n to_o play_v upon_o music_n and_o sing_v praise_n to_o god_n so_o that_o the_o heaven_n answer_v and_o echo_v to_o their_o sing_n and_o the_o joyful_a noise_n that_o they_o make_v to_o god_n for_o their_o deliverance_n so_o when_o we_o shall_v apprehend_v that_o the_o lord_n by_o his_o mighty_a power_n have_v deliver_v we_o from_o the_o egyptian_a pharaoh_n the_o devil_n from_o the_o house_n of_o bondage_n the_o iron_n furnace_n of_o egypt_n from_o the_o sting_n of_o sin_n from_o the_o power_n of_o darkness_n from_o all_o curse_n and_o condemnation_n from_o temporal_a spiritual_a and_o eternal_a death_n be_v full_o apprehensive_a of_o this_o deliverance_n we_o can_v but_o be_v fill_v with_o joy_n in_o sing_v praise_n
you_o may_v have_v of_o it_o here_o and_o you_o may_v want_v the_o enjoyment_n of_o it_o to_o all_o eternity_n therefore_o believe_v what_o have_v be_v speak_v what_o god_n have_v promise_v and_o rejoice_v in_o it_o here_o be_v confident_a that_o thou_o shall_v enjoy_v what_o god_n have_v promise_v and_o what_o thou_o have_v in_o spe_fw-la in_o hope_n here_o thou_o shall_v hereafter_o have_v in_o re_fw-la in_o full_a fruition_n serve_v god_n cheerful_o joyful_o and_o comfortable_o in_o the_o assurance_n of_o happiness_n by_o jesus_n christ_n at_o the_o resurrection_n thou_o shall_v be_v happy_a with_o god_n and_o with_o jesus_n christ_n at_o the_o resurrection_n in_o body_n and_o spirit_n which_o god_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n grant_v unto_o we_o all_o amen_n man_n be_v legal_a righteousness_n be_v no_o cause_n or_o part_n of_o his_o justification_n ephes._n 2.8_o 9_o for_o by_o grace_n be_v you_o save_v through_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o of_o yourselves_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n not_o of_o work_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v boast_v there_o be_v two_o thing_n which_o man_n ought_v chief_o to_o know_v their_o misery_n by_o sin_n and_o their_o happiness_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o wicked_a unfaithfulnesse_n of_o our_o memory_n we_o be_v more_o apt_a to_o forget_v these_o two_o thing_n then_o to_o forget_v any_o other_o point_n whatsoever_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d know_v thyself_o be_v a_o lesson_n as_o difficult_a as_o it_o be_v old_a and_o common_a how_o hard_o a_o matter_n be_v it_o for_o a_o man_n to_o remember_v himself_o as_o to_o know_v what_o he_o be_v in_o himself_o the_o king_n of_o macedonia_n think_v it_o needful_a that_o his_o page_n shall_v every_o morning_n put_v he_o in_o remembrance_n that_o he_o be_v a_o mortal_a man_n and_o every_o spiritual_a man_n do_v find_v it_o necessary_a that_o the_o spirit_n daily_o shall_v become_v his_o remembrancer_n to_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n that_o he_o be_v a_o sinful_a man_n so_o likewise_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n without_o the_o power_n &_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n always_o to_o know_v the_o rich_a full_a and_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v hold_v forth_o in_o the_o gospel_n to_o poor_a sinner_n the_o last_o of_o these_o as_o it_o be_v the_o most_o sweet_a and_o excellent_a lesson_n so_o with_o the_o great_a difficulty_n it_o be_v retain_v in_o our_o memory_n this_o be_v a_o doctrine_n which_o if_o it_o be_v preach_v unto_o we_o every_o day_n we_o shall_v forget_v it_o every_o day_n the_o daily_a teach_n and_o hourly_a learning_n of_o it_o can_v whole_o free_v we_o from_o the_o ignorance_n of_o this_o truth_n but_o as_o far_o as_o we_o be_v carnal_a and_o fleshly_a we_o be_v stranger_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o so_o that_o he_o that_o think_v he_o perfect_o know_v the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n alone_o i_o dare_v profess_v to_o that_o man_n that_o he_o know_v nothing_o of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n as_o he_o ought_v to_o know_v as_o long_o as_o we_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n we_o may_v be_v learner_n of_o this_o doctrine_n paul_n after_o he_o have_v be_v a_o scholar_n and_o a_o age_a teacher_n in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n many_o year_n do_v then_o profess_v that_o he_o endeavour_v to_o forget_v his_o own_o work_n and_o legal_a righteousness_n in_o reference_n to_o his_o justification_n and_o press_v forward_o to_o know_v more_o of_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n labour_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o righteousness_n which_o be_v of_o god_n by_o faith_n phil._n 3.10_o therefore_o though_o i_o have_v sormer_o speak_v of_o the_o chief_a point_n that_o lie_v in_o these_o verse_n yet_o i_o know_v it_o be_v needful_a and_o necessary_a for_o i_o to_o speak_v of_o it_o again_o that_o you_o that_o have_v hear_v it_o open_v may_v hear_v more_o of_o it_o as_o well_o as_o for_o those_o who_o have_v not_o hear_v the_o point_n so_o clear_o &_o full_o unfold_v unto_o they_o to_o who_o god_n may_v make_v my_o discourse_n beneficial_a if_o he_o accompany_v i_o with_o his_o presence_n wherefore_o i_o have_v pitch_v upon_o this_o subject_n at_o this_o present_a in_o which_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o divinity_n be_v comprise_v for_o faith_n and_o love_n be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o that_o we_o preach_v faith_n towards_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o love_n towards_o god_n and_o all_o those_o that_o be_v unite_v to_o he_o in_o the_o same_o spirit_n with_o ourselves_o and_o the_o apostle_n lay_v down_o both_o these_o in_o these_o verse_n show_v first_o clear_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n through_o faith_n alone_o without_o work_n and_o then_o show_v that_o though_o we_o be_v justify_v without_o work_n yet_o how_o in_o the_o spirit_n we_o be_v carry_v forth_o to_o perform_v all_o good_a work_n for_o he_o say_v we_o be_v create_v the_o workmanship_n of_o god_n unto_o good_a work_n ver_fw-la 10._o in_o these_o word_n these_o particular_n present_v themselves_o to_o your_o best_a attention_n first_o that_o salvation_n and_o justification_n be_v by_o grace_n that_o be_v by_o the_o free_a favour_n of_o god_n you_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n second_o he_o show_v how_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n in_o a_o way_n of_o believe_a not_o work_v you_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n through_o faith_n many_o pretend_v that_o they_o look_v on_o grace_n but_o it_o be_v through_o the_o spectacle_n of_o their_o own_o work_n but_o he_o that_o do_v true_o eye_n grace_n he_o look_v on_o grace_n in_o a_o act_n of_o believe_a and_o not_o through_o work_v three_o the_o apostle_n discover_v the_o nature_n of_o true_a faith_n which_o be_v the_o unfeigned_a faith_n of_o the_o elect._n first_o negative_o he_o inform_v we_o that_o this_o faith_n be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o there_o be_v not_o a_o fountain_n in_o ourselves_o from_o whence_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n spring_v it_o flow_v not_o from_o the_o natural_a carnal_a or_o rational_a principle_n of_o the_o first_o adam_n but_o from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n second_o affirmative_o he_o inform_v we_o concern_v the_o nature_n and_o original_n of_o it_o it_o proceed_v from_o god_n and_o be_v bestow_v upon_o the_o creature_n as_o a_o free_a gift_n it_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n four_o he_o show_v that_o as_o it_o be_v by_o grace_n so_o it_o be_v not_o by_o work_n as_o it_o be_v by_o believe_v so_o it_o be_v not_o by_o work_v not_o of_o work_n five_o he_o give_v the_o reason_n why_o it_o be_v not_o by_o work_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v boast_v if_o a_o man_n can_v say_v that_o god_n have_v justify_v and_o save_v he_o for_o his_o endeavour_n labour_n pain_n or_o good_a work_n than_o a_o man_n may_v boast_v when_o he_o meet_v with_o one_o that_o be_v without_o christ_n he_o may_v say_v i_o have_v do_v this_o good_a work_n and_o the_o other_o good_a work_n for_o christ_n i_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o thou_o shall_v be_v damn_v but_o the_o true_a child_n of_o god_n if_o he_o meet_v with_o a_o reprobate_n he_o see_v no_o cause_n to_o boast_v it_o be_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o he_o be_v save_v when_o the_o other_o be_v damn_v not_o by_o work_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v boast_v it_o be_v the_o design_n and_o intention_n of_o god_n in_o justify_v a_o sinner_n by_o grace_n without_o work_n to_o keep_v man_n from_o pride_n and_o boast_n man_n do_v fall_v from_o happiness_n by_o pride_n there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o attain_v happiness_n but_o by_o humility_n and_o faith_n the_o true_a way_n to_o humility_n be_v by_o believe_v for_o believe_v empty_v the_o creature_n of_o all_o work_n and_o righteousness_n and_o show_v that_o he_o be_v nothing_o in_o himself_o and_o that_o all_o his_o treasure_n glory_n happiness_n riches_n and_o perfection_n lie_v treasure_v and_o lay_v up_o in_o another_o fides_n hominem_fw-la vacuum_fw-la deo_fw-la adducit_fw-la ut_fw-la christi_fw-la bonis_fw-la impleatur_fw-la faith_n bring_v a_o man_n in_o a_o poor_a and_o beggarly_a condition_n to_o christ_n that_o he_o may_v be_v enrich_v by_o christ_n last_o the_o apostle_n declare_v that_o though_o we_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n without_o work_n yet_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v unfruitful_a in_o bring_v forth_o good_a work_n we_o be_v the_o workmanship_n of_o god_n by_o a_o new_a creation_n and_o the_o end_n of_o our_o creation_n in_o christ_n be_v this_o that_o be_v in_o he_o we_o may_v be_v active_a to_o love_v and_o good_a work_n first_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o prove_v negative_o that_o there_o be_v no_o justification_n by_o work_n and_o then_o show_v how_o it_o be_v by_o grace_n and_o then_o how_o it_o be_v in_o
debt_n by_o this_o consideration_n in_o the_o first_o place_n it_o will_v be_v evident_a to_o every_o man_n who_o have_v any_o spiritual_a knowledge_n of_o the_o purity_n and_o justice_n of_o the_o law_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o sinful_a man_n to_o find_v out_o any_o way_n but_o the_o good_a old_a way_n of_o grace_n to_o happiness_n and_o salvation_n second_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o grace_n that_o god_n may_v have_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n man_n fall_v by_o pride_n therefore_o god_n will_v not_o estate_n he_o in_o happiness_n but_o by_o humble_v he_o by_o bring_v he_o upon_o his_o knee_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n natural_o we_o be_v full_a of_o pride_n and_o will_v rise_v by_o that_o by_o which_o we_o fall_v we_o will_v be_v make_v happy_a by_o work_n as_o we_o be_v make_v unhappy_a by_o work_n every_o man_n that_o see_v himself_o see_v how_o that_o the_o whole_a stream_n of_o corrupt_a nature_n run_v this_o way_n man_n will_v be_v do_v work_a and_o act_v that_o he_o may_v be_v justify_v but_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v sinful_a man_n to_o glory_n before_o he_o in_o his_o own_o work_n lest_o he_o shall_v loose_v the_o glory_n of_o grace_n rom._n 4.2_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n for_o we_o until_o we_o lie_v down_o at_o the_o door_n of_o grace_n if_o god_n enter_v into_o judgement_n no_o man_n live_a shall_v be_v justify_v in_o his_o sight_n psal_n 143.2_o god_n do_v stop_v up_o all_o other_o way_n to_o salvation_n but_o the_o way_n of_o grace_n that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o justifi_a the_o object_n and_o vessel_n of_o his_o grace_n god_n do_v not_o so_o much_o intend_v man_n salvation_n by_o grace_n as_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o praise_n he_o form_v his_o people_n for_o himself_o that_o they_o may_v be_v happy_a in_o himself_o and_o with_o himself_o and_o they_o may_v show_v forth_o his_o praise_n psal_n 43.21_o it_o be_v the_o mind_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n that_o every_o man_n shall_v glory_v in_o himself_o therefore_o he_o justify_v and_o save_v we_o only_o by_o that_o grace_n which_o be_v in_o himself_o in_o the_o lord_n shall_v all_o the_o seed_n of_o israel_n be_v justify_v and_o shall_v glory_v and_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o have_v dicourse_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o our_o election_n predestination_n and_o adoption_n do_v sweet_o acknowledge_v that_o grace_n do_v stream_n forth_o unto_o we_o in_o all_o these_o particular_n that_o it_o may_v be_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n ephes_n 1.5_o 6._o he_o make_v we_o object_n of_o grace_n that_o he_o may_v receive_v from_o we_o and_o we_o be_v enable_v to_o give_v unto_o he_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n all_o the_o saint_n be_v bring_v forth_o stand_v before_o the_o throne_n and_o sing_v forth_o this_o truth_n rev._n 7.10_o salvation_n to_o our_o god_n which_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n and_o to_o the_o lamb_n they_o ascribe_v salvation_n not_o to_o their_o own_o work_n merit_n deserve_n or_o worthiness_n but_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n as_o earthly_a and_o gross_a body_n can_v mount_v up_o to_o heaven_n which_o be_v a_o place_n of_o purity_n and_o perfection_n but_o they_o fall_v down_o by_o their_o own_o weight_n to_o the_o earth_n unable_a to_o ascend_v thither_o so_o our_o work_n fall_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n as_o unable_a to_o ascend_v up_o to_o the_o place_n of_o god_n purity_n and_o glory_n to_o justify_v we_o in_o his_o sight_n that_o salvation_n may_v be_v attribute_v only_o to_o his_o own_o grace_n and_o he_o will_v not_o justify_v we_o in_o the_o court_n of_o our_o own_o conscience_n we_o shall_v not_o read_v our_o name_n write_v in_o heaven_n till_o he_o bring_v we_o from_o our_o own_o work_n righteousness_n performance_n and_o endeavour_n to_o rest_v upon_o the_o strong_a arm_n of_o his_o grace_n that_o we_o may_v give_v he_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o our_o free_a justification_n and_o salvation_n three_o god_n save_v we_o by_o grace_n because_o if_o it_o be_v not_o by_o grace_n it_o have_v be_v needless_a that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v have_v be_v give_v to_o we_o if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a for_o man_n to_o have_v wrought_v out_o his_o own_o salvation_n by_o his_o own_o work_n there_o have_v be_v no_o need_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v have_v disrobe_v himself_o of_o his_o glory_n and_o be_v make_v man_n like_o we_o why_o shall_v he_o have_v live_v a_o life_n of_o sorrow_n and_o die_v a_o death_n of_o shame_n have_v it_o be_v possible_a for_o we_o to_o have_v get_v salvation_n by_o our_o own_o work_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n conclude_v that_o if_o righteousness_n have_v be_v by_o the_o law_n than_o christ_n have_v dye_v in_o vain_a and_o thus_o have_v i_o open_v to_o you_o and_o show_v you_o the_o reason_n why_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n in_o aword_n now_o to_o make_v a_o little_a use_n of_o it_o and_o so_o i_o shall_v conclude_v for_o the_o present_a in_o the_o first_o place_n that_o which_o i_o have_v deliver_v concern_v the_o eternal_a grace_n of_o god_n sufficient_o confute_v that_o error_n which_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o many_o man_n who_o think_v that_o work_n and_o act_n of_o the_o creature_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o god_n love_n to_o the_o creature_n god_n do_v not_o love_v we_o because_o we_o love_v he_o but_o we_o love_v god_n because_o he_o first_o love_v we_o from_o eternity_n god_n do_v not_o begin_v to_o love_v we_o when_o we_o be_v make_v new_a creature_n but_o god_n love_v we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v new_a creature_n faith_n be_v not_o the_o antecedent_n cause_n but_o consequent_a of_o election_n tit._n 3.5_o not_o by_o work_n of_o righteousness_n which_o we_o have_v do_v but_o according_a to_o his_o mercy_n he_o save_v we_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o regeneration_n and_o renew_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n by_o this_o passage_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o mercy_n do_v precede_v regeneration_n and_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o spiritual_a renovation_n vocation_n and_o justification_n by_o faith_n do_v follow_v predestination_n if_o paul_n speak_v the_o truth_n rom._n 8.30_o who_o he_o do_v predestinate_a they_o he_o also_o call_v and_o who_o he_o call_v they_o he_o also_o justify_v and_o who_o he_o justfy_v they_o he_o also_o glorify_v god_n love_v we_o when_o we_o have_v no_o being_n in_o ourselves_o or_o among_o any_o creature_n to_o assure_v we_o that_o he_o do_v not_o love_v we_o for_o any_o thing_n in_o we_o there_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o in_o we_o when_o god_n first_o love_v we_o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v not_o like_o the_o love_n of_o man_n man_n love_v something_o which_o he_o see_v lovely_a but_o god_n see_v nothing_o in_o the_o object_n which_o he_o love_v but_o all_o the_o motive_n and_o argument_n lie_v in_o the_o bosom_n and_o breast_n of_o god_n which_o move_v he_o to_o love_v his_o creature_n man_n can_v love_v before_o he_o have_v some_o lovely_a object_n propose_v to_o he_o but_o god_n love_v before_o we_o have_v either_o be_v or_o holiness_n we_o believe_v in_o god_n love_v he_o and_o be_v make_v lovely_a before_o he_o in_o time_n because_o he_o love_v we_o before_o all_o time_n the_o man_n spiritual_o wise_a do_v see_v his_o happiness_n wrap_v up_o in_o the_o eternal_a bowel_n of_o grace_n and_o lay_v up_o in_o the_o everlasting_a bosom_n of_o unchangeable_a love_n for_o he_o fond_a therefore_o be_v there_o conceit_n shallow_a there_o apprehension_n and_o understanding_n dull_a who_o believe_v that_o any_o thing_n do_v or_o believe_v by_o the_o creature_n in_o time_n can_v be_v the_o primary_n cause_n of_o the_o creature_n salvation_n to_o who_o grace_n be_v give_v for_o salvation_n from_o eternity_n 2_o tim._n 1.2_o etc._n etc._n this_o doctrine_n of_o free_a grace_n do_v overthrow_n and_o annihilate_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o wise_a the_o learning_n of_o the_o learned_a the_o righteousness_n of_o he_o who_o be_v most_o righteous_a and_o a_o stranger_n to_o grace_n the_o natural_a man_n with_o his_o best_a sight_n see_v not_o a_o righteousness_n beyond_o the_o righteousness_n of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n as_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v foolishness_n to_o the_o natural_a man_n so_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v foolishness_n with_o god_n though_o there_o be_v a_o spirit_n in_o a_o man_n by_o which_o he_o may_v have_v great_a knowledge_n and_o understanding_n in_o the_o thing_n of_o nature_n and_o reason_n yet_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o almighty_a which_o give_v understanding_n job_n 32.8_o until_o
this_o spirit_n and_o power_n from_o above_o come_v upon_o we_o we_o call_v light_a darkness_n and_o darkness_n light_n sinfulness_n purity_n purity_n imperfection_n but_o when_o this_o do_v enter_v into_o we_o all_o our_o righteousness_n appear_v as_o filthy_a rag_n and_o we_o be_v make_v willing_a to_o rest_v upon_o that_o grace_n for_o righteousness_n which_o be_v give_v we_o in_o christ_n jesus_n before_o the_o world_n begin_v 2_o tim._n 1.9_o then_o we_o clear_o see_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n in_o show_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v show_v mercy_n and_o have_v compassion_n on_o who_o he_o will_v have_v compassion_n then_o we_o can_v but_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o he_o that_o will_v nor_o of_o he_o that_o run_v but_o of_o god_n that_o show_v mercy_n then_o the_o objection_n of_o carnal_a reason_n be_v full_o answer_v the_o acute_a argument_n of_o the_o worldly_a wise_a and_o learned_a against_o free_a grace_n be_v dissolve_v the_o sophism_n of_o the_o antigratians_n be_v sufficient_o confute_v and_o we_o be_v save_v and_o satisfy_v with_o the_o glorious_a discovery_n of_o god_n eternal_a grace_n in_o christ_n jesus_n again_o this_o shall_v engage_v we_o all_o that_o know_v this_o save_a grace_n to_o exalt_v and_o extol_v this_o grace_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n grace_n apprehend_v by_o we_o do_v oblige_v we_o unto_o thankfulness_n it_o be_v fit_a that_o they_o shall_v glorify_v god_n for_o his_o grace_n who_o see_v themselves_o glorify_v by_o grace_n the_o prophet_n isaiah_n set_v forth_o this_o unto_o we_o isa_n 45._o last_o in_o jehovah_n shall_v all_o the_o seed_n of_o israel_n be_v justify_v and_o shall_v glory_v he_o that_o be_v justify_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o jehovah_n will_v certain_o glory_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o jehovah_n let_v we_o therefore_o glory_n not_o in_o ourselves_o not_o in_o our_o labour_n suffering_n act_n or_o endeavour_n but_o in_o this_o grace_n of_o the_o father_n according_a to_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o prophet_n jeremiah_n 9.23_o 24._o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n let_v not_o the_o wise_a man_n glory_n in_o his_o wisdom_n neither_o let_v the_o mighty_a man_n glory_n in_o his_o might_n let_v not_o the_o rich_a man_n glory_n in_o his_o riches_n but_o let_v he_o that_o glori_v glory_n in_o this_o that_o he_o understand_v and_o know_v i_o that_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n which_o exercise_n love_v kindness_n judgement_n and_o righteousness_n in_o the_o earth_n let_v our_o holy_a boast_n be_v in_o this_o righteousness_n let_v the_o resolution_n of_o the_o sweet_a singer_n of_o israel_n be_v the_o resolution_n of_o every_o one_o of_o we_o psal_n 71.16_o i_o will_v make_v mention_n of_o thy_o righteousness_n even_o of_o thy_o only_a god_n forbid_v say_v paul_n that_o i_o shall_v glory_v in_o any_o thing_n save_v in_o the_o cross_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n so_o let_v every_o good_a christian_a say_v god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v glory_n save_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n let_v pharisees_n and_o hypocrite_n boast_v of_o their_o own_o work_n and_o legal_a righteousness_n but_o let_v true_a saint_n boast_v only_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o merciful_a and_o favourable_a jehovah_n what_o be_v ingenuous_o acknowledge_v concern_v himself_o by_o paul_n 1_o cor._n 15.10_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n i_o be_o what_o i_o be_o may_v be_v acknowledge_v by_o all_o saint_n by_o grace_n we_o be_v what_o we_o be_v and_o therefore_o glory_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o grace_v god_n gracious_a love_n be_v place_v upon_o we_o before_o we_o be_v lovely_a jer._n 31.3_o he_o love_v we_o with_o a_o everlasting_a love_n he_o love_v we_o when_o we_o be_v unlovely_a when_o he_o see_v we_o pollute_v in_o our_o blood_n then_o be_v the_o time_n of_o his_o love_n ezek._n 16.6.8_o his_o grace_n and_o love_n have_v make_v we_o lovely_a what_o cause_n then_o be_v there_o that_o we_o shall_v glory_v in_o this_o grace_n and_o love_v it_o be_v a_o excellent_a speech_n of_o bernard_n to_o this_o purpose_n tibi_fw-la illibata_fw-la maneat_fw-la gloria_fw-la meum_fw-la benè_fw-la agitur_fw-la si_fw-la pacem_fw-la habuero_fw-la take_v thou_o all_o the_o glory_n it_o be_v enough_o for_o we_o that_o we_o have_v the_o peace_n in_o psal_n 130.3_o the_o psalmist_n profess_v that_o if_o the_o lord_n shall_v mark_v iniquity_n no_o man_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o stand_v before_o he_o if_o thou_o lord_n shall_v mark_v iniquity_n o_o lord_n who_o shall_v stand_v the_o interrogation_n be_v equivalent_a to_o a_o negation_n who_o shall_v stand_v that_o be_v no_o man_n shall_v stand_v we_o that_o shall_v quick_o fall_v to_o ruin_n have_v we_o no_o better_a ground_n to_o stand_v upon_o then_o our_o own_o work_n what_o reason_n have_v we_o to_o bless_v god_n for_o grace_n who_o only_o stand_v by_o grace_n if_o we_o can_v stand_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o god_n stand_v clothe_v in_o the_o menstruous_a rag_n of_o our_o own_o work_n righteousness_n &_o performance_n there_o be_v some_o ground_n for_o we_o to_o glory_n in_o our_o own_o work_n but_o see_v it_o be_v thus_o that_o if_o god_n enter_v into_o judgement_n and_o deal_v with_o we_o by_o the_o law_n we_o can_v stand_v before_o he_o therefore_o let_v we_o glory_v only_o in_o he_o with_o heart_n and_o tongue_n give_v he_o praise_v for_o what_o he_o have_v do_v for_o thou_o by_o his_o grace_n who_o have_v cause_n to_o be_v ashamed_a for_o what_o thou_o have_v do_v against_o his_o grace_n a_o king_n of_o france_n think_v himself_o bind_v to_o praise_n god_n that_o god_n have_v make_v he_o a_o king_n and_o not_o a_o beggar_n what_o cause_n have_v we_o to_o praise_v he_o for_o his_o grace_n who_o of_o sinner_n have_v make_v we_o saint_n if_o devout_a bradford_n when_o he_o see_v a_o blind_a or_o a_o lame_a man_n do_v take_v occasion_n to_o bless_v god_n for_o the_o use_n of_o his_o limb_n &_o eyesight_n be_v it_o not_o consonant_a to_o reason_n that_o we_o shall_v publish_v forth_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n grace_n who_o have_v bestow_v spiritual_a life_n light_n and_o operation_n upon_o we_o the_o apostle_n have_v a_o high_a expression_n to_o raise_v our_o spirit_n to_o this_o purpose_n 2_o cor._n 2.14_o now_o thanks_o be_v to_o god_n which_o always_o cause_v we_o to_o triumph_v in_o christ_n when_o man_n triumph_v there_o be_v great_a joy_n rejoice_v and_o shout_a we_o be_v not_o only_o to_o rejoice_v in_o his_o grace_n but_o we_o shall_v triumph_v in_o it_o a_o christian_a may_v ride_v in_o a_o chariott_n of_o triumph_n every_o day_n he_o may_v see_v his_o sin_n curse_n hell_n and_o damnation_n subdue_v and_o overcome_v when_o he_o behold_v god_n in_o the_o look_a glass_n of_o his_o own_o grace_n what_o though_o we_o have_v many_o sin_n yet_o for_o all_o this_o we_o may_v triumph_v because_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n have_v save_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n by_o christ_n what_o though_o we_o have_v no_o work_n yet_o we_o may_v triumph_v if_o we_o know_v grace_n there_o be_v enough_o for_o we_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o grace_n there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o peace_n here_o or_o glory_n hereafter_o but_o by_o grace_n let_v grace_n therefore_o be_v thy_o glory_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v double_a his_o exhortation_n when_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o rejoice_v that_o they_o may_v double_v their_o diligence_n and_o care_n in_o practice_n of_o their_o duty_n phil._n 4.4_o rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n always_o and_o again_o i_o say_v rejoice_v so_o suffer_v i_o to_o double_a and_o treble_a my_o exhortation_n you_o have_v nothing_o to_o boast_v in_o but_o grace_n boast_v therefore_o and_o again_o i_o say_v boast_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n god_n seem_v in_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n to_o speak_v to_o a_o hypocritical_a proud_a people_n and_o he_o bid_v they_o bring_v forth_o their_o argument_n and_o put_v he_o in_o remembrance_n if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v bring_v before_o he_o for_o which_o they_o shall_v be_v justify_v isa_n 43.26_o let_v we_o plead_v together_o declare_v thou_o that_o thou_o may_v be_v justify_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v if_o you_o have_v any_o work_n bring_v they_o out_o use_v all_o your_o argument_n skill_n and_o rhetoric_n say_v what_o you_o can_v for_o yourselves_o to_o plead_v your_o justification_n but_o to_o convince_v they_o that_o they_o can_v not_o stand_v before_o he_o with_o their_o work_n for_o justification_n he_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o their_o sin_n thy_o first_o father_n have_v sin_v and_o thy_o teacher_n have_v transgress_v against_o i_o ver_fw-la 27._o to_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v what_o be_v promise_v in_o the_o 25_o verse_n that_o he_o will_v blot_v out_o their_o sin_n for_o his_o own_o sake_n so_o it_o be_v with_o
ungodliness_n &_o worldly_a lust_n he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o grace_n in_o the_o first_o place_n teach_v we_o to_o deny_v ungodliness_n &_o worldly_a lust_n but_o in_o the_o first_o place_n it_o bring_v justification_n &_o salvation_n through_o believe_v &_o then_o secondary_o the_o same_o grace_n teach_v we_o to_o deny_v ungodliness_n &_o worldly_a lust_n after_o we_o have_v believe_v for_o salvation_n the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v give_v ephes_n 1.13_o in_o believe_v we_o enter_v into_o our_o rest_n heb._n 4.3_o keep_v the_o year_n of_o jubilee_n &_o see_v ourselves_o instate_v in_o happiness_n and_o keep_v a_o christian_n sabbath_n it_o be_v only_o in_o believe_v that_o we_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o that_o felicity_n which_o be_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o apostle_n in_o their_o epistle_n do_v not_o hold_v forth_o any_o truth_n more_o frequent_o than_o this_o gal_n 5.6_o in_o jesus_n christ_n neither_o circumcision_n avail_v any_o thing_n nor_o uncircumcision_n but_o faith_n which_o work_v by_o love_n and_o ro._n 5.1_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n we_o have_v peace_n with_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n when_o the_o keeper_n of_o the_o prison_n ask_v paul_n &_o silas_n what_o they_o shall_v do_v to_o be_v save_v suppofe_v salvation_n be_v only_o attainable_a by_o work_v they_o do_v at_o one_o discover_v unto_o he_o his_o error_n &_o blindness_n &_o acquaint_v he_o with_o the_o soul_n save_v truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n assure_v he_o that_o if_o he_o believe_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n he_o shall_v be_v save_v act_n ●6_n 31_o we_o find_v not_o rest_v in_o our_o spirit_n by_o the_o ●●ght_n of_o our_o work_n love_n sincerity_n labour_n &_o envour_n but_o by_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o christ_n have_v by_o these_o place_n of_o scripture_n confirm_v to_o you_o this_o truth_n i_o shall_v now_o amplyfie_v it_o by_o show_v unto_o you_o more_o full_o how_o it_o may_v be_v in_o truth_n affirm_v that_o we_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n in_o the_o first_o place_n it_o be_v by_o faith_n and_o by_o faith_n alone_o not_o by_o faith_n join_v with_o work_n but_o by_o faith_n without_o work_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o where_o true_a faith_n be_v work_n will_v follow_v yet_o salvation_n be_v through_o faith_n without_o work_n when_o we_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n we_o enter_v not_o into_o the_o bosom_n of_o his_o love_n by_o our_o love_n and_o faith_n together_o but_o by_o faith_n which_o produce_v love_n our_o eye_n be_v shut_v to_o the_o behold_v all_o thing_n in_o ourselves_o and_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o spirit_n be_v enlighten_v to_o behold_v what_o be_v in_o god_n grace_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n consonant_a to_o this_o be_v paul_n sweet_a and_o comfortable_a conclusion_n rom._n 3.28_o we_o conclude_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n love_n to_o god_n and_o his_o people_n be_v a_o work_n command_v by_o the_o law_n but_o according_a to_o paul_n conclusion_n of_o truth_n we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n therefore_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o love_n to_o god_n or_o his_o people_n when_o god_n discover_v his_o grace_n to_o a_o man_n for_o his_o justification_n he_o show_v he_o that_o as_o his_o evil_a work_n can_v bring_v damnation_n unto_o he_o so_o his_o good_a work_n can_v be_v available_a for_o his_o justification_n that_o assurance_n of_o god_n love_n which_o some_o professor_n have_v get_v by_o the_o sight_n of_o their_o own_o work_n be_v never_o illuminate_v in_o their_o understanding_n to_o behold_v god_n grace_n in_o the_o light_n and_o beam_n of_o grace_n be_v not_o the_o true_a assurance_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o the_o deceit_n and_o lie_a divination_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n concern_v their_o own_o happiness_n for_o salvation_n be_v by_o faith_n without_o work_n god_n do_v not_o require_v we_o to_o do_v good_a work_n for_o salvation_n in_o the_o conscience_n but_o do_v positive_o and_o absolute_o exclude_v they_o as_o thing_n which_o have_v no_o influence_n at_o all_o upon_o that_o first_o assurance_n which_o he_o do_v give_v unto_o his_o people_n of_o his_o love_n which_o be_v by_o a_o pure_a simple_a unmix_a act_n of_o faith_n the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n be_v never_o give_v to_o comfort_v we_o until_o god_n have_v strip_v we_o of_o our_o own_o righteousness_n work_n and_o performance_n and_o have_v bring_v we_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n to_o be_v justify_v by_o free_a grace_n without_o any_o thing_n in_o ourselves_o that_o may_v make_v we_o fit_a for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n the_o apostle_n do_v lay_v down_o this_o as_o a_o truth_n second_v by_o his_o own_o experience_n and_o the_o experience_n of_o all_o true_a saint_n gal._n 2.16_o assert_v that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n even_o we_o say_v he_o have_v believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n for_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v no_o flesh_n be_v justify_v it_o be_v not_o as_o the_o papist_n say_v that_o faith_n which_o have_v love_n join_v with_o it_o which_o they_o make_v the_o form_n of_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v but_o it_o be_v by_o faith_n without_o any_o work_n at_o all_o by_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o have_v peace_n of_o conscience_n augustine_n do_v plain_o lay_v down_o his_o judgement_n in_o this_o point_n according_a to_o truth_n noli_fw-la presumere_fw-la de_fw-la operibus_fw-la ante_fw-la fidem_fw-la quia_fw-la peccatorem_fw-la te_fw-la fides_fw-la invenit_fw-la etsi_fw-la te_fw-la fides_fw-la data_fw-la facit_fw-la justum_fw-la impium_fw-la invenit_fw-la quem_fw-la faceret_fw-la justum_fw-la presume_v not_o upon_o thy_o work_n do_v before_o faith_n because_o faith_n find_v thou_o a_o sinner_n faith_n have_v make_v thou_o just_a it_o find_v thou_o wicked_a who_o it_o shall_v make_v just_a the_o second_o reason_n why_o it_o be_v thus_o by_o faith_n alone_o be_v because_o it_o be_v by_o grace_n unless_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n we_o be_v not_o we_o can_v not_o be_v justify_v by_o grace_n this_o reason_n the_o apostle_n lay_v down_o rom._n 4.16_o therefore_o it_o be_v of_o faith_n that_o it_o may_v be_v by_o grace_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v unless_o you_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v a_o justification_n by_o faith_n alone_o without_o work_n you_o deny_v grace_n if_o you_o will_v be_v justify_v by_o faith_n and_o work_v conjoin_v you_o destroy_v grace_n therefore_o it_o be_v by_o faith_n alone_o that_o it_o may_v be_v by_o grace_n when_o we_o have_v a_o true_a sight_n of_o grace_n we_o see_v a_o sufficiency_n in_o that_o grace_n to_o do_v we_o good_a for_o our_o justification_n and_o salvation_n so_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o needful_a &_o necessary_a beside_o grace_n in_o which_o respect_n luther_n say_v that_o work_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o justification_n but_o pernicious_a to_o salvation_n the_o gospel_n require_v faith_n only_o according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n gal._n 3.12_o the_o law_n be_v not_o of_o faith_n the_o law_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o believe_a that_o doctrine_n which_o bid_v a_o man_n to_o believe_v that_o he_o may_v be_v save_v that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o law_n bid_v we_o not_o to_o believe_v but_o the_o man_n that_o do_v it_o shall_v live_v in_o it_o the_o law_n bid_v we_o work_v but_o the_o gospel_n bid_v we_o believe_v not_o work_n and_o believe_v but_o believe_v only_o we_o confound_v the_o covenant_n of_o work_n and_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n if_o we_o press_v a_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o do_v good_a work_n for_o justification_n this_o be_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o bloodsucker_n bishop_n bonner_n who_o in_o a_o sermon_n propound_v this_o quest_n how_o grace_n be_v to_o be_v apply_v to_o we_o for_o justification_n do_v answer_v by_o believe_v right_o and_o live_v upright_o join_v faith_n and_o holiness_n for_o justification_n by_o grace_n whereas_o by_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v manifest_v that_o faith_n alonedoth_a lie_v hold_v of_o christ_n and_o do_v appropriate_v he_o unto_o we_o and_o that_o holiness_n do_v flow_v and_o stream_n from_o the_o apprehension_n of_o our_o free_a justification_n by_o grace_n through_o faith_n alone_o though_o faith_n be_v not_o alone_o but_o be_v accompany_v with_o other_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o follow_v it_o this_o must_v be_v well_o understand_v or_o else_o we_o shall_v nullify_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n wherefore_o god_n enable_v true_a believer_n
the_o same_o assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n draw_v some_o useful_a conclusion_n from_o the_o premise_n and_o so_o put_v a_o period_n to_o my_o discourse_n for_o the_o present_a first_o this_o do_v discover_v unto_o we_o the_o usefulness_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o unfeigned_a faith_n of_o the_o elect_a as_o noah_n be_v preserve_v from_o the_o destruction_n which_o come_v upon_o the_o old_a world_n by_o go_v for_o his_o safety_n into_o the_o ark_n so_o by_o the_o foot_n of_o faith_n we_o walk_v into_o our_o ark_n christ_n jesus_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n the_o world_n of_o sin_n be_v a_o dismal_a wilderness_n full_a of_o fiery_a serpent_n by_o faith_n we_o eye_n jesus_n christ_n as_o our_o brazen_a serpent_n and_o set_v foot_v in_o the_o heavenly_a canaan_n of_o god_n grace_n while_o the_o sinful_a sodom_n of_o the_o world_n be_v destroy_v with_o the_o rain_n of_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n by_o faith_n like_o righteous_a lot_n we_o escape_v out_o of_o it_o when_o with_o peter_n we_o be_v ready_a to_o sink_v and_o perish_v in_o the_o sea_n of_o sin_n by_o faith_n we_o touch_v the_o save_a arm_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o be_v preserve_v when_o we_o drink_v the_o deadly_a poison_n of_o fin_n by_o faith_n we_o take_v in_o jesus_n christ_n as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o antidote_n and_o the_o deadly_a poison_n do_v not_o hurt_v we_o but_o we_o be_v miraculous_o preserve_v faith_n behold_v christ_n crucify_v before_o we_o gal._n 3.2_o and_o evident_o set_v forth_o who_o have_v nail_v the_o law_n of_o work_n our_o sin_n and_o death_n to_o his_o own_o cross_n and_o we_o who_o deserve_v damnation_n be_v save_v through_o grace_n christ_n be_v the_o man_n who_o be_v a_o hide_v place_n from_o the_o wind_n and_o a_o covert_n from_o the_o tempest_n isa_n 32.2_o sin_n be_v a_o noxious_a and_o a_o destroy_a wind_n as_o wind_n in_o the_o cavern_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v a_o cause_n of_o a_o earthquake_n so_o fin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o destroy_v earthquake_n in_o the_o earthly_a heart_n of_o man_n but_o christ_n be_v our_o hide_v place_n in_o which_o through_o believe_v we_o be_v safe_a the_o devil_n infernal_a wind_n and_o blast_n destroy_v many_o a_o soul_n with_o which_o he_o fill_v it_o with_o hellish_a error_n and_o impiety_n to_o its_o destruction_n act_v 5.3_o christ_n fill_v his_o people_n by_o breathe_v upon_o they_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n for_o their_o salvation_n but_o christ_n be_v a_o shelter_n from_o the_o infernal_a blast_n of_o satan_n and_o while_o carnal_a and_o unbelieved_a man_n be_v as_o a_o ship_n under_o sail_n and_o the_o devil_n unto_o they_o be_v as_o a_o powerful_a wind_n violent_o blow_v they_o to_o destruction_n act_v 26.18_o christ_n by_o enable_v his_o people_n to_o believe_v do_v blow_v they_o with_o the_o pleasant_a gale_n of_o his_o sweet_a spirit_n to_o the_o haven_n of_o peace_n and_o safety_n though_o there_o be_v infectious_a and_o destroy_v wind_n upon_o earth_n yet_o there_o be_v none_o in_o heaven_n so_o though_o the_o man_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v infect_v with_o the_o wind_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n to_o their_o ruin_n yet_o they_o who_o live_v in_o the_o heaven_n of_o god_n grace_n by_o faith_n jesus_n christ_n be_v a_o defence_n unto_o they_o when_o darkness_n and_o tempest_n be_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n from_o the_o law_n which_o they_o have_v break_v christ_n who_o rebuke_v the_o tempest_n of_o the_o sea_n mat._n 8.2_o do_v rebuke_n tempestates_fw-la mentis_fw-la high_a the_o tempest_n of_o our_o trouble_a mind_n and_o conscience_n and_o by_o believe_v there_o be_v a_o great_a calm_a in_o the_o soul_n sin_n in_o the_o soul_n be_v like_o jonah_n in_o the_o ship_n which_o bring_v a_o tempest_n with_o it_o but_o christ_n through_o faith_n do_v cast_v this_o tempest-raiser_n into_o the_o sea_n of_o his_o father_n grace_n and_o the_o soul_n be_v quiet_v and_o fill_v with_o joy_n and_o peace_n in_o believe_v the_o philosopher_n say_v that_o logic_n to_o a_o rational_a and_o learned_a man_n be_v the_o instrument_n of_o instrument_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d without_o which_o he_o shall_v make_v little_a proficiency_n in_o other_o art_n and_o science_n so_o faith_n be_v the_o organ_n or_o instrument_n to_o the_o spiritual_a man_n by_o which_o he_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o which_o he_o be_v to_o do_v all_o thing_n and_o without_o which_o he_o can_v do_v nothing_o second_o this_o discover_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o agent_n do_v so_o much_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o preach_n of_o it_o he_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o man_n salvation_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n through_o which_o we_o be_v save_v the_o devil_n do_v what_o he_o please_v to_o those_o who_o be_v without_o faith_n as_o be_v unable_a to_o resist_v he_o unbelieved_a man_n be_v like_o the_o israelite_n without_o a_o shield_n or_o spear_n to_o defend_v themselves_o judas_n 5.7_o and_o the_o devil_n do_v lead_v they_o captive_a at_o his_o will_n 2_o tim._n 2.26_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o wild_a beast_n be_v master_v and_o rule_v by_o those_o who_o have_v take_v they_o in_o a_o snare_n or_o net_n so_o the_o word_n fignifi_v but_o when_o we_o believe_v to_o salvation_n we_o be_v furnish_v with_o power_n to_o oppose_v he_o who_o seek_v our_o damnation_n when_o we_o believe_v we_o be_v arm_v against_o his_o encounter_n and_o fit_v against_o his_o opposition_n faith_n be_v the_o soul_n defensive_a shield_n by_o which_o all_o his_o fiery_a dart_n be_v quench_v eph._n 6.16_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o he_o do_v always_o raise_v opposition_n persecution_n and_o reproach_n against_o the_o doctrine_n and_o prosessor_n of_o faith_n three_o see_v salvation_n be_v by_o faith_n examine_v thyself_o concern_v thy_o salvation_n by_o try_v thy_o faith_n man_n that_o be_v not_o in_o the_o faith_n who_o have_v not_o christ_n in_o they_o be_v not_o approve_v christian_n 2_o cor._n 13.5_o know_v you_o not_o your_o own_o self_n how_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o you_o except_o you_o be_v reprobate_n the_o word_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d except_o you_o be_v unapprove_v it_o be_v possible_a that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o unbelief_n and_o yet_o no_o reprobate_n but_o he_o that_o can_v prove_v that_o he_o have_v faith_n can_v prove_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o christian_a or_o in_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n querie_n it_o in_o thy_o soul_n whether_o thou_o have_v such_o a_o faith_n as_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o you_o have_v hear_v that_o we_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n which_o be_v a_o supernatural_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n by_o which_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o natural_a man_n can_v apprehend_v concern_v salvation_n be_v make_v plain_a to_o the_o soul_n supernatural_a thing_n can_v be_v know_v but_o by_o something_o which_o be_v supernatural_a as_o the_o thing_n of_o nature_n be_v know_v by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n thing_n of_o reason_n by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n so_o the_o thing_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o salvation_n by_o the_o supernatural_a gift_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o evidence_n of_o the_o supernatural_a thing_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v invisible_a heb_fw-mi 11.1_o abraham_n believe_v against_o hope_n rom._n 4.18_o so_o a_o spiritual_a man_n believe_v the_o thing_n of_o glory_n and_o eternal_a life_n which_o the_o short_a line_n of_o natural_a reason_n can_v reach_v or_o fathom_n and_o which_o natural_o he_o can_v hope_v for_o or_o expect_v be_v thy_o faith_n who_o do_v profess_v thy_o self_n a_o child_n of_o abraham_n such_o a_o faith_n as_o abraham_n faith_n be_v who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a second_o true_a believer_n see_v their_o salvation_n by_o faith_n alone_o though_o a_o man_n have_v many_o seed_n together_o in_o his_o hand_n yet_o he_o may_v know_v the_o various_a and_o diverse_a nature_n of_o those_o several_a seed_n so_o though_o a_o justify_v man_n have_v many_o precious_a seed_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o his_o heart_n yet_o he_o know_v the_o several_a nature_n of_o they_o all_o though_o he_o have_v love_n to_o god_n in_o his_o heart_n as_o well_o as_o faith_n in_o god_n yet_o he_o know_v the_o nature_n of_o faith_n which_o alone_o be_v avaylable_a to_o justification_n try_v whether_o thou_o have_v be_v enable_v to_o fly_v to_o the_o strong_a tower_n of_o god_n grace_n for_o safety_n against_o hell_n sin_n and_o devil_n by_o the_o silver_n wing_n of_o faith_n without_o the_o help_n of_o work_n for_o justification_n three_o a_o believer_n see_v justification_n can_v be_v by_o grace_n
if_o work_n and_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v conjoin_v for_o justification_n gratia_n non_fw-la est_fw-la gratia_fw-la ullo_fw-la modo_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la gratuity_n a_o omni_fw-la modo_fw-la grace_n be_v not_o grace_n in_o any_o way_n unless_o it_o be_v free_a and_o undeserved_a every_o way_n grace_n be_v not_o free_a and_o undeserved_a unless_o it_o be_v reach_v forth_o without_o any_o consideration_n of_o our_o own_o work_n which_o be_v only_o through_o faith_n try_v whether_o god_n have_v teach_v thou_o this_o lesson_n of_o truth_n four_o faith_n do_v take_v the_o glory_n of_o justistification_n from_o the_o creature_n and_o give_v it_o unto_o grace_n have_v thou_o learn_v to_o sing_v the_o new_a song_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o redeem_v one_o before_o the_o throne_n cry_v salvation_n only_o to_o god_n who_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n and_o to_o the_o lamb._n five_o be_v thou_o full_o persuade_v of_o god_n power_n and_o faithfulness_n who_o have_v leave_v promise_n of_o grace_n upon_o record_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o poor_a sinner_n be_v thou_o with_o abraham_n full_o persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n promise_v of_o grace_n in_o reference_n to_o thyself_o i_o remember_v what_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_n say_v that_o to_o profess_v christ_n without_o assurance_n be_v to_o be_v without_o faith_n live_v in_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n fidem_fw-la in_fw-la doom_n fidei_fw-la non_fw-la habere_fw-la cypr._n a_o spiritual_a man_n be_v that_o which_o he_o believe_v himself_o to_o be_v id_fw-la esse_fw-la incipit_fw-la quod_fw-la se_fw-la esse_fw-la credit_n he_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v positive_o and_o negative_o righteous_a in_o christ_n free_v from_o fin_n and_o make_v a_o partaker_n of_o a_o glorious_a righteousness_n for_o his_o justification_n and_o so_o he_o be_v of_o a_o leper_n by_o believe_v in_o a_o instant_n make_v whole_a he_o believe_v that_o he_o owe_v nothing_o to_o his_o creditor_n and_o his_o creditor_n believe_v so_o too_o six_o a_o believe_a man_n be_v bone_n of_o the_o bone_n flesh_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o one_o spirit_n with_o the_o lord_n jesus_n there_o be_v a_o close_a &_o near_a union_n &_o application_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o soul_n by_o faith_n do_v thou_o in_o believe_v see_v thyself_o a_o member_n of_o christ_n as_o thy_o hand_n or_o foot_n be_v a_o part_n of_o thy_o body_n be_v christ_n the_o quicken_a spirit_n of_o thy_o spirit_n to_o enliven_v that_o as_o thy_o spirit_n be_v the_o spirit_n which_o do_v enliven_v thy_o body_n 7_o lie_n do_v thou_o so_o live_v by_o faith_n that_o thou_o look_v upon_o christ_n as_o thy_o life_n and_o righteousness_n more_o than_o faith_n not_o suffer_v any_o persuasion_n which_o thou_o call_v thy_o righteousness_n to_o sit_v in_o the_o uppermost_a room_n of_o thy_o heart_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o god_n glory_n in_o christ_n a_o spiritual_a heart_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mac_n the_o throne_n of_o the_o deity_n where_o god_n in_o christ_n be_v exalt_v as_o the_o chief_a righteousness_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v it_o so_o in_o thou_o john_n 14.1_o 8_o have_v thou_o by_o faith_n as_o a_o instrument_n touch_v the_o hem_n of_o christ_n garment_n for_o the_o heal_n of_o the_o bloody_a issue_n of_o thy_o own_o soul_n he_o that_o be_v wise_a and_o good_a be_v wise_a and_o good_a for_o himself_o and_o if_o thou_o be_v true_o wise_a and_o good_a thou_o be_v wise_a in_o apply_v christ_n to_o make_v thyself_o wise_a and_o good_a last_o be_v thy_o faith_n such_o a_o faith_n through_o which_o christ_n have_v inward_o discover_v himself_o unto_o thou_o form_v and_o create_v himself_o in_o thou_o job_n 32.8_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o almighty_a give_v understanding_n if_o thy_o faith_n be_v true_a it_o be_v by_o inward_a inspiration_n quer._n but_o must_v we_o have_v such_o a_o faith_n if_o we_o will_v be_v the_o child_n of_o believe_a abraham_n answ_n every_o true_a believer_n have_v such_o a_o faith_n for_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o though_o not_o for_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o degree_n of_o it_o there_o be_v a_o perfect_a &_o fair_a copy_n of_o faith_n in_o those_o who_o have_v be_v present_v unto_o thou_o thou_o be_v to_o have_v the_o same_o copy_n write_v forth_o upon_o thy_o heart_n though_o it_o may_v not_o be_v so_o fair_o write_v forth_o at_o the_o first_o but_o if_o it_o be_v a_o true_a copy_n of_o faith_n thou_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o question_v thy_o assurance_n though_o thou_o do_v find_v it_o very_o weak_a at_o the_o present_a a_o palsey-shaken_a hand_n may_v receive_v a_o gift_n and_o a_o weak_a faith_n may_v receive_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o jesus_n christ_n a_o dwarf_n be_v a_o man_n as_o well_o as_o a_o giant_n though_o not_o so_o tall_a and_o one_o who_o be_v but_o a_o dwarf_n and_o low_a in_o christianity_n by_o the_o weakness_n of_o his_o faith_n may_v be_v a_o christian_n as_o well_o as_o those_o who_o be_v of_o a_o tall_a stature_n in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n three_o this_o which_o have_v be_v deliver_v may_v be_v for_o the_o strengthen_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o the_o increase_a the_o comfort_n of_o those_o who_o have_v lay_v hold_v of_o salvation_n by_o a_o lively_a faith_n on_o jesus_n christ_n comfort_n be_v increase_v by_o the_o same_o mean_n by_o which_o they_o be_v wrought_v at_o the_o first_o and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n pray_v for_o the_o roman_n that_o the_o lord_n will_v fill_v they_o with_o all_o joy_n and_o peace_n in_o believe_v rom._n 15.13_o our_o comfort_n be_v low_a because_o our_o faith_n be_v weak_a comfort_n flow_v in_o by_o renew_a act_n of_o faith_n satan_n will_v rob_v we_o of_o our_o comfort_n by_o wrest_v faith_n which_o be_v our_o shield_n from_o we_o ephes_n 6.16_o and_o this_o be_v one_o way_n in_o which_o he_o do_v labour_n to_o weaken_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o saint_n by_o suggest_v this_o unto_o the_o saint_n that_o salvation_n be_v not_o only_o through_o faith_n but_o against_o this_o temptation_n and_o all_o his_o other_o fiery_a dart_n we_o may_v hold_v forth_o this_o buckler_n of_o truth_n that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n through_o faith_n answer_v he_o therefore_o from_o this_o truth_n and_o he_o will_v be_v silence_v resist_v he_o in_o believe_v this_o truth_n and_o hec_fw-la will_v flee_v from_o thou_o jam._n 4.7_o and_o the_o spirit_n will_v fly_v into_o thy_o soul_n to_o comfort_v thou_o so_o long_o as_o abraham_n live_v he_o live_v as_o a_o justify_v man_n by_o faith_n so_o long_o as_o paul_n live_v he_o live_v by_o faith_n in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n gal._n 2._o we_o die_v rather_o than_o live_v when_o we_o be_v not_o under_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n enable_v we_o to_o believe_v we_o lie_v down_o either_o in_o the_o bed_n of_o carnal_a security_n or_o familisticall_a antichristianisme_n or_o fall_v under_o the_o bondage_n of_o the_o law_n when_o we_o step_v aside_o from_o the_o plain_a doctrine_n of_o salvation_n by_o faith_n in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n and_o therefore_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o devil_n the_o great_a enemy_n to_o a_o saint_n comfort_n do_v join_v themselves_o together_o to_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n satan_n know_v that_o faith_n and_o work_n be_v inconsistent_a in_o point_n of_o justification_n and_o when_o he_o observe_v that_o we_o be_v in_o some_o measure_n convince_v that_o salvation_n be_v by_o faith_n he_o endeavour_v to_o persuade_v we_o that_o it_o be_v by_o faith_n and_o work_v and_o will_v divide_v our_o justification_n between_o faith_n and_o work_v as_o the_o harlot_n cry_v out_o 1_o king_n 3.26_o concern_v the_o child_n neither_o mine_n nor_o thou_o but_o divide_v it_o so_o the_o devil_n will_v have_v we_o divide_v our_o justification_n &_o attribute_v half_a of_o it_o to_o faith_n and_o give_v the_o other_o part_n to_o work_n but_o the_o believe_a man_n see_v that_o there_o be_v salvation_n in_o christ_n and_o not_o in_o any_o other_o and_o that_o no_o other_o name_n under_o heaven_n be_v give_v among_o man_n whereby_o they_o must_v be_v save_v act_v 4.12_o and_o that_o we_o rest_v upon_o this_o name_n for_o salvation_n only_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n we_o have_v boldness_n &_o access_n with_o confidence_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o he_o ephesian_n 3.12_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d we_o be_v manuduce_v and_o lead_v by_o the_o hand_n as_o it_o be_v with_o persuasion_n of_o christ_n goodness_n to_o we_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n continue_v in_o that_o faith_n by_o which_o paul_n be_v justify_v who_o believe_v that_o christ_n love_v he_o and_o give_v himself_o for_o he_o and_o thy_o comfort_n and_o peace_n shall_v be_v continue_v unto_o the._n it_o it_o melancthons_n observation_n that_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d
he_o profess_v not_o this_o only_a in_o word_n and_o in_o tongue_n but_o that_o he_o profess_v it_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o he_o therefore_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v not_o from_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o by_o the_o father_n which_o have_v reveal_v it_o to_o he_o where_o we_o may_v find_v our_o position_n clear_o confirm_v to_o you_o that_o those_o that_o true_o believe_v who_o have_v the_o unfeigned_a faith_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n it_o be_v not_o a_o faith_n wrought_v in_o they_o by_o themselves_o it_o do_v not_o flow_v from_o any_o natural_a principle_n but_o it_o be_v the_o immediate_a work_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n in_o their_o heart_n as_o we_o do_v not_o nor_o can_v not_o make_v our_o own_o heart_n so_o we_o can_v make_v our_o heart_n new_a heart_n jerem._n 13.23_o can_v the_o ethiopian_a change_n his_o skin_n or_o the_o leopard_n his_o spot_n then_o may_v you_o also_o do_v good_a who_o be_v accustom_v to_o do_v evil_a by_o which_o the_o prophet_n do_v clear_o hold_v forth_o this_o truth_n that_o sinner_n can_v no_o more_o by_o their_o own_o strength_n make_v themselves_o saint_n which_o be_v by_o faith_n than_o a_o blackmore_n can_v change_v the_o colour_n of_o his_o skin_n or_o the_o leopard_n his_o spot_n a_o ethiopian_a may_v be_v paint_v white_a so_o a_o hypocritical_a sinner_n may_v be_v a_o paint_a sepulchre_n appear_v righteous_a and_o sound_a to_o man_n when_o he_o be_v full_a of_o rottenness_n within_o but_o god_n alone_o do_v change_v and_o purify_v our_o heart_n by_o his_o gift_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o for_o the_o amplify_a of_o this_o point_n to_o you_o i_o shall_v lay_v down_o some_o subsequent_a consideration_n by_o which_o i_o shall_v prove_v this_o to_o you_o that_o he_o that_o true_o believe_v do_v not_o believe_v by_o any_o power_n strength_n or_o ability_n in_o himself_o by_o which_o he_o be_v in_o any_o measure_n fit_v and_o enable_v for_o this_o great_a work_n of_o true_a justify_v faith_n the_o first_o consideration_n shall_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v hold_v forth_o to_o we_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o faith_n be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o saint_n by_o which_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v discover_v to_o he_o and_o by_o which_o he_o in_o his_o heart_n rom._n 10.9_o be_v make_v willing_a to_o receive_v christ_n and_o to_o rest_v upon_o he_o and_o his_o righteousness_n alone_o for_o his_o justification_n rom._n 10.4_o thus_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o faith_n first_o it_o speak_v of_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v a_o light_n of_o god_n in_o the_o understanding_n so_o we_o be_v bid_v to_o look_v to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v save_v isa_n 45.22_o and_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o faithful_a that_o by_o faith_n they_o see_v the_o promise_n afar_o off_o heb._n 11.13_o they_o see_v christ_n not_o as_o we_o see_v he_o who_o behold_v he_o as_o he_o have_v be_v offer_v up_o as_o our_o sacrifice_n and_o have_v make_v a_o end_n of_o our_o sin_n dan._n 9_o but_o they_o behold_v he_o as_o one_o that_o be_v to_o come_v and_o be_v to_o make_v a_o propitiation_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o if_o we_o thus_o look_v upon_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v a_o beam_n from_o god_n enlighten_v we_o in_o our_o understanding_n to_o see_v god_n grace_n in_o his_o son_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o which_o will_v appear_v if_o we_o consider_v what_o our_o own_o understanding_n be_v before_o god_n do_v give_v we_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n i_o shall_v acquaint_v you_o here_o with_o scripture_n expression_n which_o do_v sufficient_o and_o clear_o hold_v forth_o this_o unto_o we_o the_o first_o expression_n be_v that_o man_n without_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v darken_v in_o their_o understanding_n the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o gentile_n that_o know_v not_o christ_n he_o say_v ephes_n 4.18_o that_o they_o have_v their_o understanding_n darken_v be_v alienate_v from_o the_o life_n of_o god_n through_o the_o ignorance_n that_o be_v in_o they_o there_o be_v a_o mist_n and_o cloud_n of_o darkness_n upon_o the_o understanding_n of_o all_o carnal_a and_o unbelieving_a man_n as_o the_o apostle_n paul_n when_o he_o have_v scale_n before_o his_o eye_n be_v not_o able_a to_o behold_v the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n so_o while_o the_o scale_n of_o natural_a darkness_n and_o ignorance_n be_v upon_o the_o heart_n and_o spirit_n of_o man_n they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o behold_v the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n they_o may_v hear_v christ_n preach_v they_o may_v hear_v the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n free_o and_o full_o handle_v but_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o behold_v any_o thing_n of_o god_n or_o christ_n because_o they_o have_v their_o understanding_n darken_v be_v not_o enlighten_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n to_o see_v christ_n 2_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o only_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o be_v darken_v in_o their_o understanding_n but_o it_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o sit_v in_o darkness_n matth._n 4.16_o the_o people_n which_o sit_v in_o darkness_n see_v great_a light_n here_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o all_o man_n without_o christ_n set_v forth_o to_o we_o they_o be_v man_n that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n and_o zacharias_n in_o his_o song_n speak_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n say_v luke_n 1.79_o that_o he_o be_v the_o day_n spring_n from_o on_o high_a to_o give_v light_n to_o they_o that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n and_o in_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n though_o a_o man_n have_v eye_n yet_o if_o he_o sit_v in_o a_o dark_a dungeon_n he_o can_v see_v no_o visible_a object_n it_o will_v therefore_o be_v evident_a that_o carnal_a man_n can_v see_v of_o themselves_o because_o they_o be_v not_o only_o darken_v in_o their_o understanding_n but_o they_o sit_v in_o the_o dark_a dungeon_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n be_v not_o able_a to_o behold_v the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o god_n grace_n which_o be_v not_o discover_v and_o make_v visible_a unto_o we_o until_o we_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n but_o in_o the_o 3_o place_n the_o holy_a spirit_n speak_v of_o natural_a man_n without_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o inform_v we_o that_o they_o be_v darken_v and_o have_v their_o seat_n in_o darkness_n but_o they_o love_v darkness_n they_o be_v please_v with_o their_o present_a state_n and_o condition_n of_o darkness_n they_o be_v unwilling_a to_o have_v any_o light_n break_v forth_o upon_o they_o so_o our_o saviour_n say_v john_n 3.19_o this_o be_v the_o condemnation_n that_o light_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n but_o man_n love_v darkness_n they_o love_v unbelief_n and_o ignorance_n they_o have_v rather_o be_v the_o devil_n prisoner_n in_o dungeon_n of_o darkness_n then_o enjoy_v their_o liberty_n in_o christ_n marvellous_a light_n they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v unable_a to_o make_v themselves_o happy_a in_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v in_o love_n with_o their_o own_o unhappiness_n they_o will_v not_o come_v to_o christ_n that_o they_o may_v have_v life_n they_o be_v unwilling_a that_o christ_n shall_v reign_v over_o they_o though_o he_o do_v offer_v salvation_n unto_o they_o they_o say_v unto_o god_n depart_v from_o we_o for_o we_o will_v not_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o thy_o way_n job_n 21.14_o like_o the_o gadarens_n they_o do_v desire_n jesus_n to_o depart_v out_o of_o their_o coast_n they_o be_v the_o slave_n of_o sin_n and_o free_a from_o righteousness_n rom._n 6.20_o when_o they_o be_v disobedient_a to_o the_o command_n of_o righteousness_n they_o do_v account_v it_o their_o liberty_n and_o freedom_n as_o the_o service_n of_o christ_n be_v liberty_n to_o a_o saint_n cvi_fw-la servire_fw-la regnare_fw-la est_fw-la aug._n so_o the_o service_n of_o sin_n be_v account_v liberty_n by_o a_o carnal_a man_n they_o be_v like_o the_o servant_n that_o be_v to_o be_v bore_v through_o the_o ear_n upon_o his_o profession_n that_o he_o love_v his_o master_n and_o will_v not_o go_v out_o free_a exod._n 21.5_o this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o every_o man_n out_o of_o christ_n he_o profess_v that_o he_o love_v his_o master_n he_o love_v the_o devil_n &_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v sweet_a and_o please_a to_o he_o he_o have_v rather_o live_v as_o a_o swine_n and_o wallow_v in_o the_o filth_n and_o mire_n of_o sin_n then_o taste_v of_o those_o joy_n and_o pleasure_n which_o be_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n he_o have_v rather_o do_v the_o devil_n drudgery_n then_o enjoy_v that_o perfect_a freedom_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o the_o saint_n it_o be_v
the_o riches_n of_o his_o grace_n second_o god_n in_o christ_n do_v present_v himself_o as_o have_v a_o sufficiency_n of_o grace_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o great_a of_o sinner_n without_o work_n but_o how_o do_v carnal_a reason_n strong_o and_o vigorous_o fight_v against_o god_n goodness_n conclude_v that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o truth_n in_o this_o doctrine_n that_o the_o law_n and_o good_a work_n will_v presen_o be_v destroy_v a_o natural_a man_n can_v believe_v that_o god_n be_v so_o gracious_a as_o gospel-minister_n will_v persuade_v the_o world_n that_o he_o be_v as_o the_o unbelieve_a lord_n when_o the_o prophet_n tell_v he_o of_o the_o great_a plenty_n in_o samaria_n say_v if_o god_n shall_v open_v window_n in_o heaven_n can_v this_o this_o thing_n be_v 1_o king_n 7._o so_o a_o natural_a man_n when_o christ_n be_v offer_v to_o sinner_n without_o any_o work_n unless_o god_n give_v grace_n to_o believe_v he_o be_v ready_a to_o say_v if_o the_o window_n of_o heaven_n be_v open_v and_o all_o the_o grace_n and_o mercy_n in_o heaven_n shall_v come_v down_o upon_o we_o if_o god_n shall_v let_v out_o all_o the_o bowel_n of_o his_o pity_n and_o compassion_n to_o poor_a sinner_n it_o can_v be_v so_o as_o you_o say_v and_o speak_v concern_v free_a grace_n to_o sinner_n and_o ungodly_a one_o so_o that_o if_o a_o natural_a man_n shall_v do_v nothing_o but_o hear_v sermon_n and_o although_o angel_n or_o christ_n himself_o shall_v come_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o preach_v unto_o he_o he_o will_v be_v as_o able_a of_o himself_o to_o keep_v the_o whole_a law_n for_o justification_n as_o to_o believe_v true_o and_o save_o in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o some_o will_v say_v that_o if_o it_o be_v thus_o that_o a_o man_n may_v as_o easy_o in_o his_o own_o strength_n keep_v the_o law_n as_o believe_v the_o gospel_n why_o do_v not_o god_n then_o rather_o enable_v we_o to_o keep_v the_o law_n that_o we_o may_v be_v save_v then_o bid_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o god_n save_v we_o by_o enable_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n and_o not_o by_o enable_v we_o to_o keep_v the_o law_n for_o justification_n because_o god_n will_v have_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o our_o salvation_n god_n will_v not_o save_v we_o in_o a_o way_n of_o work_v but_o in_o a_o way_n of_o believe_a that_o all_o the_o glory_n may_v be_v give_v to_o he_o the_o apostle_n give_v this_o as_o a_o reason_n why_o it_o be_v by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o work_n that_o no_o man_n may_v boast_v ver_fw-la 9_o not_o of_o work_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v boast_v by_o which_o argument_n he_o prove_v that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v not_o justify_v by_o work_n rom._n 4.2_o if_o abraham_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n say_v he_o he_o have_v whereof_o to_o glory_v as_o we_o may_v observe_v it_o in_o some_o people_n who_o be_v build_v upon_o legal_a principle_n like_o the_o pharisee_fw-mi luke_n 18.11_o they_o be_v boast_v that_o they_o be_v not_o as_o other_o man_n as_o though_o their_o good_a work_n have_v make_v the_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o other_o this_o frame_n of_o spirit_n do_v rob_v god_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n who_o will_v not_o that_o any_o flesh_n shall_v glory_v in_o his_o presence_n but_o that_o he_o that_o glori_v shall_v glory_v in_o the_o lord_n 1_o cor._n 1.29.3_o and_o therefore_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n through_o faith_n in_o the_o word_n make_v flesh_n and_o not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o second_o some_o will_v object_v why_o do_v god_n take_v this_o pain_n with_o man_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n if_o they_o be_v able_a to_o do_v no_o more_o to_o their_o own_o conversion_n than_o a_o dead_a man_n to_o his_o own_o resurrection_n to_o this_o objection_n i_o have_v already_o give_v a_o answer_n yet_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o add_v this_o to_o what_o have_v be_v already_o speak_v for_o the_o full_a satisfaction_n of_o those_o that_o be_v weak_a though_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o of_o ourselves_o yet_o god_n entreat_v exhort_v and_o beseech_v we_o to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o he_o in_o jesus_n christ_n because_o in_o exhort_v entreat_v and_o beseech_v of_o we_o to_o believe_v he_o put_v forth_o his_o power_n and_o his_o own_o strength_n to_o enable_v we_o to_o believe_v while_o paul_n exhort_v the_o gaoler_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o he_o may_v be_v save_v god_n enable_v the_o gaoler_n to_o believe_v life_n and_o power_n be_v convey_v to_o the_o soul_n in_o gospel_n command_v and_o exhortation_n when_o christ_n raise_v the_o son_n of_o the_o widow_n of_o naim_n to_o life_n luke_n 7.14_o he_o speak_v to_o he_o young_a man_n i_o say_v to_o thou_o arise_z no_o man_n who_o have_v not_o lose_v his_o reason_n will_v conclude_v from_o hence_o that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o young_a man_n that_o be_v dead_a by_o which_o he_o be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n who_o do_v bid_v he_o arise_v so_o though_o god_n speak_v in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n to_o those_o that_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n and_o trespass_n and_o bid_v they_o arise_v from_o the_o dead_a that_o he_o may_v give_v they_o light_n yet_o we_o can_v conclude_v from_o thence_o that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o man_n by_o which_o they_o do_v believe_v but_o it_o be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n convey_v in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n christ_n command_v lazarus_n to_o come_v forth_o but_o he_o come_v not_o forth_o in_o his_o own_o strength_n but_o in_o the_o power_n and_o strength_n of_o he_o that_o command_v he_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n so_o we_o command_v man_n to_o come_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n of_o sin_n but_o they_o come_v not_o forth_o in_o their_o own_o strength_n but_o in_o the_o power_n and_o strength_n of_o that_o spirit_n that_o command_v they_o from_o the_o grave_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o land_n of_o the_o live_n while_o ezekiel_n prophesy_v over_o the_o dead_a bone_n breath_n come_v into_o they_o and_o they_o live_v ez●k_v 37.10_o so_o while_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v preach_v over_o their_o sinful_a impenitent_a hearer_n who_o be_v like_o the_o prophet_n dry_a bone_n the_o breath_n of_o heaven_n the_o spirit_n of_o the_o most_o high_a in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n enter_v in_o into_o they_o and_o not_o by_o work_v but_o believe_v they_o be_v make_v new_a creature_n and_o see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n in_o the_o next_o place_n you_o see_v faith_n be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o it_o be_v not_o in_o any_o thing_n in_o man_n or_o in_o man_n wisdom_n that_o man_n be_v enable_v to_o believe_v what_o be_v report_v concern_v god_n grace_n in_o jesus_n christ_n therefore_o this_o may_v convince_v we_o that_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v of_o ourselves_o be_v a_o false_a faith_n and_o not_o the_o true_a justify_v faith_n of_o the_o saint_n the_o good_a fruit_n of_o faith_n can_v grow_v out_o of_o a_o wicked_a heart_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o a_o man_n natural_o be_v wickedness_n and_o every_o imagination_n of_o the_o thought_n of_o his_o heart_n be_v vanity_n and_o only_o evil_a continual_o gen._n 6.5_o psalm_n 94.11_o when_o god_n look_v down_o from_o heaven_n upon_o the_o child_n of_o the_o first_o adam_n he_o see_v that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o that_o do_v understand_v and_o seek_v god_n they_o be_v all_o go_v aside_o they_o be_v all_o become_v filthy_a there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v good_a no_o ●ot_n one_o psal_n 14.2.3_o and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n die_v for_o we_o when_o we_o be_v enemy_n unto_o he_o and_o without_o strength_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n for_o our_o own_o salvation_n rom._n 5.6_o that_o faith_n therefore_o which_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n be_v not_o that_o true_a faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v only_o wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n where_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o saint_n be_v justify_v by_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o god_n 1_o cor._n 6_o 11._o therefore_o if_o thy_o faith_n be_v a_o work_n or_o persuasion_n of_o thy_o own_o spirit_n if_o it_o be_v frame_v and_o hammer_v by_o thyself_o upon_o the_o anvil_n of_o thy_o own_o spirit_n it_o be_v a_o counterfeit_a persuasion_n and_o will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o advantage_v thou_o in_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o prophet_n jeremiah_n of_o the_o vision_n of_o a_o man_n own_o heart_n and_o the_o vision_n
of_o god_n so_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a faith_n there_o be_v the_o faith_n or_o persuasion_n of_o a_o man_n own_o heart_n and_o a_o persuasion_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o as_o the_o vision_n of_o a_o man_n own_o heart_n be_v false_a dream_n lie_n and_o deceit_n and_o be_v just_o reprehend_v by_o the_o prophet_n jerem._n 23.26_o so_o the_o persuasion_n of_o a_o man_n own_o heart_n they_o be_v false_a dream_n and_o lie_a persuasion_n we_o be_v to_o give_v no_o credit_n to_o they_o as_o we_o shall_v not_o believe_v a_o commonly_a so_o we_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v the_o persuasion_n of_o our_o own_o heart_n the_o same_o prophet_n in_o the_o 28._o ver_fw-la compare_v lie_v prophecy_n to_o chaff_n and_o the_o prophecy_n of_o truth_n to_o wheat_n what_o say_v he_o be_v the_o chaff_n to_o the_o wheat_n so_o true_a faith_n be_v like_a unto_o wheat_n and_o faith_n of_o ourselves_o be_v like_a unto_o chaff_n as_o the_o wind_n drive_v away_o the_o chaff_n psalm_n 1.4_o so_o the_o blast_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o the_o wind_n of_o temptation_n will_v blow_v away_o the_o chaff_n of_o a_o false_a faith_n while_o true_a faith_n shall_v be_v preserve_v by_o god_n and_o we_o through_o it_o shall_v be_v preserve_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n wherefore_o brethren_n we_o be_v to_o try_v whether_o or_o no_o we_o do_v true_o believe_v examine_v yourselves_o say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 13.5_o whether_o you_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n as_o we_o have_v a_o touchstone_n to_o try_v gold_n so_o god_n have_v leave_v a_o spiritual_a touchstone_n by_o which_o true_a faith_n may_v be_v try_v as_o there_o be_v counterfeit_a piece_n of_o gold_n which_o can_v be_v hardly_o distinguish_v from_o true_a gold_n until_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o touchstone_n so_o there_o be_v a_o counterfeit_a faith_n which_o can_v hardly_o be_v distinguish_v from_o true_a faith_n until_o it_o be_v bring_v unto_o the_o spiritual_a touchstone_n therefore_o it_o will_v be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o every_o one_o of_o you_o to_o try_v what_o faith_n you_o have_v it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o be_v persuade_v that_o you_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o that_o christ_n be_v you_o and_o that_o your_o name_n be_v write_v in_o heaven_n alas_o there_o be_v false_a persuasion_n as_o well_o as_o true_a there_o be_v multitude_n of_o libertine_n who_o turn_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n into_o wantonness_n and_o make_v their_o belly_n their_o god_n and_o mind_n earthly_a thing_n phil._n 3._o and_o yet_o have_v strong_a persuasion_n that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n there_o be_v pharisees_n who_o be_v persuade_v that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o pharisee_n have_v a_o assurance_n and_o give_v god_n thanks_n for_o it_o too_o luke_n 18.11_o god_n i_o thank_v thou_o i_o be_o not_o as_o other_o man_n be_v and_o yet_o he_o be_v but_o a_o hypocrite_n all_o the_o while_n delude_v with_o the_o proud_a conceit_n of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n the_o unbelieve_a jew_n profess_v with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o boldness_n and_o confidence_n that_o god_n be_v their_o father_n john_n 8.41_o we_o have_v one_o father_n even_o god_n and_o yet_o our_o saviour_n tell_v they_o plain_o that_o though_o they_o have_v these_o strong_a persuasion_n that_o god_n be_v their_o father_n yet_o in_o truth_n the_o devil_n be_v their_o father_n you_o be_v say_v he_o vers_n 44._o of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n a_o man_n may_v be_v persuade_v that_o christ_n will_v save_v he_o and_o go_v to_o hell_n and_o be_v damn_v with_o that_o persuasion_n we_o see_v by_o experience_n that_o many_o apostate_n who_o have_v make_v a_o profession_n of_o christ_n &_o have_v have_v strong_a persuasion_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n have_v fall_v from_o the_o gospel_n to_o profaneness_n arminianism_n and_o diabolical_a familisme_n our_o bless_a emanuel_n do_v plain_o prove_v this_o truth_n unto_o we_o by_o acquaint_v we_o with_o some_o who_o when_o they_o shall_v be_v bring_v before_o his_o judgement-seate_n shall_v be_v confident_a of_o their_o interest_n in_o he_o who_o nevertheless_o he_o will_v not_o own_v to_o be_v his_o matth._n 7.21_o 22._o not_o every_o on_o that_o say_v lord_n lord_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n many_o shall_v say_v unto_o i_o in_o that_o day_n lord_n lord_n have_v we_o not_o prophesy_v in_o thy_o name_n and_o in_o thy_o name_n have_v cast_v out_o devil_n and_o in_o thy_o name_n do_v many_o wonderful_a work_n yet_o you_o see_v what_o christ_n will_v profess_v unto_o they_o i_o never_o know_v you_o depart_v from_o i_o you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v it_o be_v true_a you_o have_v a_o strong_a persuasion_n that_o you_o shall_v be_v heir_n in_o my_o kingdom_n it_o be_v true_a you_o think_v that_o you_o shall_v be_v save_v if_o any_o in_o the_o world_n be_v save_v but_o i_o tell_v you_o for_o all_o that_o i_o know_v you_o not_o depart_v you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n wherefore_o it_o concern_v all_o man_n to_o know_v whether_o their_o faith_n be_v a_o right_a faith_n self-ish_a faith_n be_v no_o right_a faith_n if_o it_o arise_v from_o no_o high_a a_o fountain_n than_o our_o own_o natural_a reason_n wisdom_n and_o understanding_n our_o faith_n be_v from_o ourselves_o and_o we_o may_v carry_v it_o to_o hell_n with_o we_o and_o find_v as_o good_a faith_n there_o in_o the_o devil_n as_o this_o be_v though_o this_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v concern_v the_o trial_n of_o faith_n do_v chief_o concern_v such_o who_o be_v deceive_v with_o a_o false_a faith_n of_o their_o own_o make_n yet_o it_o will_v be_v very_o advantageous_a for_o the_o true_a saint_n likewise_o to_o try_v their_o faith_n wherefore_o before_o i_o press_v this_o far_a upon_o such_o who_o be_v under_o a_o spirit_n of_o delusion_n i_o shall_v speak_v a_o word_n unto_o the_o saint_n unto_o this_o purpose_n consider_v that_o that_o man_n who_o have_v true_a faith_n may_v likewise_o have_v much_o false_a faith_n there_o may_v be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o dead_a faith_n in_o he_o who_o have_v a_o live_a faith_n where_o there_o be_v true_a gold_n there_o may_v be_v much_o dross_n and_o in_o that_o professor_n in_o who_o there_o be_v the_o golden_a faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n there_o may_v be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o drossy_a faith_n which_o be_v nothing_o worth_a a_o christian_a have_v two_o contrary_a nature_n in_o he_o he_o have_v flesh_n as_o well_o as_o spirit_n and_o as_o there_o be_v persuasion_n in_o he_o flow_v from_o the_o spirit_n so_o there_o may_v be_v persuasion_n flow_v from_o the_o flesh_n saint_n sometime_o when_o they_o be_v in_o a_o lukewarm_a and_o backslide_n condition_n be_v apt_a to_o please_v and_o content_v themselves_o with_o the_o working_n and_o persuasion_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n and_o they_o may_v find_v that_o much_o of_o their_o joy_n and_o comfort_n do_v not_o proceed_v from_o true_a faith_n wrought_v by_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n but_o from_o the_o lie_a cheat_a counterfeit_n work_v and_o operation_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n will_v you_o know_v one_o principal_a ground_n and_o reason_n why_o some_o true_a saint_n be_v so_o unfruitful_a deadhearted_n formal_a and_o lukewarm_a in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v because_o the_o devil_n cheat_v they_o with_o the_o working_n and_o persuasion_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n when_o god_n persuade_v the_o heart_n of_o his_o love_n our_o heart_n be_v inflame_v with_o a_o holy_a love_n to_o god_n and_o be_v willing_a to_o do_v or_o suffer_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n but_o when_o we_o content_v ourselves_o with_o the_o work_n of_o our_o own_o spirit_n there_o be_v idleness_n sloth_n neglect_v of_o christian_a duty_n coldness_n formality_n and_o lukewarmness_n so_o that_o there_o be_v little_a difference_n between_o we_o &_o other_o again_o it_o concern_v you_o all_o to_o try_v your_o persuasion_n for_o if_o any_o of_o you_o cozen_v and_o cheat_v yourselves_o with_o the_o persuasion_n of_o you_o own_o spirit_n the_o time_n will_v come_v that_o you_o who_o kindle_v these_o spark_n and_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n of_o your_o own_o fire_n and_o in_o the_o speak_v that_o you_o have_v kindle_v this_o shall_v you_o receive_v from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n you_o shall_v lie_v down_o in_o sorrow_n isa_n 50.11_o when_o you_o expect_v heaven_n you_o will_v be_v cast_v down_o to_o hell_n when_o you_o shall_v be_v confident_a that_o christ_n be_v you_o and_o shall_v be_v ready_a to_o plead_v the_o goodness_n of_o your_o cause_n in_o the_o face_n of_o jesus_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o you_o be_v deceive_v by_o
i_o of_o my_o ignorance_n and_o to_o bring_v i_o to_o rest_v upon_o his_o grace_n in_o his_o son_n as_o a_o poor_a wretched_a sinner_n enable_v i_o to_o believe_v that_o my_o sin_n be_v blot_v out_o for_o his_o own_o name_n sake_n though_o my_o sin_n do_v testify_v against_o i_o so_o these_o who_o be_v in_o the_o same_o condition_n in_o which_o i_o then_o be_v if_o they_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o god_n have_v give_v unto_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v be_v convince_v that_o by_o faith_n through_o christ_n we_o have_v access_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n with_o boldness_n and_o that_o faith_n be_v not_o give_v in_o consideration_n of_o any_o precede_a act_n of_o holiness_n or_o sanctification_n but_o as_o the_o free_a gift_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n that_o they_o who_o have_v thus_o err_v in_o spirit_n isa_n 29.24_o may_v come_v unto_o understanding_n and_o such_o who_o have_v murmur_v against_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n grace_n may_v learn_v doctrine_n give_v i_o leave_v brief_o to_o lay_v down_o some_o convince_a consideration_n which_o may_v bring_v to_o your_o remembrance_n those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v more_o full_o handle_v 1_o consi_fw-la the_o word_n and_o promise_n which_o we_o do_v enjoy_v be_v free_a gift_n of_o god_n favour_n what_o reason_n can_v we_o give_v why_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o outward_a mean_n of_o grace_n rather_o than_o american_n but_o his_o own_o free_a grace_n psalm_n 147.19_o he_o show_v his_o word_n unto_o jacob_n his_o statute_n and_o his_o judgement_n unto_o israel_n it_o be_v the_o lord_n that_o bring_v the_o external_a mean_n and_o word_n of_o grace_n as_o a_o gift_n more_o worth_a than_o the_o whole_a world_n unto_o a_o people_n according_a to_o that_o sweet_a promise_n of_o god_n ezek._n 29.21_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o open_n of_o the_o mouth_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o the_o great_a and_o precious_a promise_n by_o the_o believe_a of_o which_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v free_o give_v unso_v we_o 2_o pet._n 1.4_o 2_o consi_fw-la the_o power_n of_o god_n do_v make_v the_o difference_n between_o man_n who_o do_v enjoy_v the_o outward_a mean_n 2_o pe._n 1.3_o his_o divine_a power_n have_v give_v we_o all_o thing_n that_o pertain_v unto_o life_n and_o godlinsse_n through_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o who_o have_v call_v we_o to_o glory_n and_o virtue_n if_o god_n do_v put_v forth_o that_o omnipotent_a power_n in_o all_o which_o he_o do_v in_o some_o who_o hear_v the_o gospel_n all_o as_o well_o as_o some_o shall_v believe_v 1_o cor._n 3.7_o neither_o he_o that_o plant_v be_v any_o thing_n neither_o be_v that_o water_v but_o god_n that_o give_v the_o encreasse_n upon_o which_o word_n one_o give_v we_o this_o observation_n as_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v plant_v and_o water_v do_v not_o spring_v up_o thrive_v and_o prosper_v but_o those_o who_o god_n do_v bless_v so_o all_o man_n who_o be_v plant_v in_o the_o church_n of_o ghrist_n and_o water_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n do_v not_o true_o believe_v but_o those_o upon_o who_o god_n bestow_v faith_n nec_fw-la omnium_fw-la est_fw-la fides_fw-la qui_fw-la audiunt_fw-la verbum_fw-la sed_fw-la quibus_fw-la deus_fw-la partitur_fw-la mensuram_fw-la fidei_fw-la sicut_fw-la nec_fw-la omne_fw-la germinant_fw-la quae_fw-la plantantur_fw-la et_fw-la rigantur_fw-la but_o i_o have_v touch_v upon_o this_o before_o 3._o consi_fw-la god_n good_a grace_n do_v prevent_v man_n good_a work_n in_o his_o justification_n god_n in_o his_o grace_n must_v give_v we_o a_o new_a creation_n &_o heavenly_a be_v in_o his_o word_n make_v flesh_n 1_o joh._n before_o good_a work_n can_v be_v wrought_v by_o we_o sicut_fw-la creatore_fw-la opus_fw-la habemus_fw-la ut_fw-la essemus_fw-la sic_fw-la salvatore_fw-la ut_fw-la revivisceremus_fw-la aug._n as_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o shall_v have_v a_o creator_n to_o give_v we_o being_n as_o creature_n so_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o shall_v have_v a_o saviour_n to_o make_v we_o new_a creature_n through_o faith_n 4_o consi_fw-la god_n grace_n do_v not_o only_o prevent_v our_o work_n but_o faith_n itself_o faith_n be_v a_o effect_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o therefore_o god_n be_v gravious_a before_o we_o believe_v it_o be_v a_o blessing_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o therefore_o in_o this_o respect_n it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v that_o we_o be_v under_o the_o new_a covenant_n before_o we_o do_v believe_v by_o which_o we_o may_v plain_o see_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o free_a gift_n mercy_n be_v show_v unto_o the_o faithful_a and_o it_o be_v show_v unto_o we_o to_o make_v we_o faithful_a fideli_fw-la datur_fw-la quidem_fw-la miser_n ecordia_fw-la sed_fw-la data_fw-la est_fw-la etiam_fw-la ut_fw-la esset_fw-la fidelis_fw-la aug._n one_o say_v that_o mercy_n be_v show_v unto_o paul_n not_o only_o because_o he_o be_v faithful_a but_o that_o he_o may_v be_v faithfufull_a the_o apostle_n to_o prove_v the_o freeness_n of_o grace_n in_o bestow_v faith_n as_o a_o gift_n upon_o we_o have_v these_o three_o expression_n within_o the_o limit_n of_o three_o verse_n rom._n 5.15_o 16_o 17._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d call_v faith_n a_o gift_n and_o a_o gift_n of_o grace_n and_o a_o gift_n of_o grace_n for_o righteousness_n 5._o consi_fw-la there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o happiness_n for_o thou_o but_o by_o grace_n and_o no_o close_n in_o any_o sure_a or_o comfortable_a way_n with_o grace_n but_o through_o faith_n we_o be_v all_o condemn_v by_o the_o law_n and_o there_o be_v no_o escape_v for_o we_o but_o by_o that_o pardon_n which_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n in_o the_o prerogative_n of_o his_o grace_n do_v give_v unto_o we_o and_o no_o way_n for_o we_o to_o be_v able_a to_o read_v our_o pardon_n unless_o god_n teach_v we_o and_o therefore_o god_n have_v promise_v isa_n 14.3_o to_o give_v we_o rest_v from_o our_o sorrow_n fear_n and_o hard_a bondage_n with_o grace_n psal_n 84.11_o knowledge_n ezek._n 29.21_o i'faith_o rom._n 11.26_o strength_n and_o peace_n psalm_n 29.11_o wherefore_o let_v we_o be_v willing_a to_o receive_v christ_n by_o faith_n and_o to_o receive_v faith_n as_o a_o gift_n god_n must_v clothe_v thou_o with_o his_o son_n and_o give_v thou_o faith_n to_o put_v he_o on_o refuse_v not_o this_o glorious_a garment_n because_o god_n will_v give_v it_o thou_o free_o but_o be_v content_v to_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o christ_n and_o faith_n according_a to_o god_n own_o pleasure_n think_v not_o with_o simon_n magus_n to_o buy_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n faith_n be_v a_o free_a gift_n god_n will_v not_o sell_v a_o diamond_n for_o dung_n faith_n be_v a_o precious_a diamond_n in_o a_o christian_n crown_n work_n before_o faith_n but_o dung_n phil._n 3._o cease_v then_o from_o thinling_n by_o thy_o own_o work_n to_o purchase_v that_o faith_n which_o god_n do_v intend_v free_o to_o give_v unto_o man_n because_o man_n can_v give_v no_o considerable_a price_n for_o it_o make_v no_o more_o word_n in_o bargain_v with_o god_n for_o faith_n he_o will_v give_v unto_o he_o that_o be_v athirst_a of_o the_o fountain_n of_o the_o water_n of_o life_n free_o rev._n 21.6_o let_v no_o man_n be_v keep_v back_o by_o his_o old_a age_n or_o sin_n from_o hope_v to_o obtain_v salvation_n through_o faith_n while_o we_o be_v in_o this_o world_n no_o repentance_n be_v too_o late_o there_o be_v a_o way_n to_o mercy_n nec_fw-la quisquam_fw-la aut_fw-la peccatis_fw-la retardebitur_fw-la aut_fw-la annis_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la consequendam_fw-la in_o isto_fw-la adhuc_fw-la mundo_fw-la manenti_fw-la paenitentia_fw-la nulla_fw-la sera_fw-it est_fw-la patet_fw-la ad_fw-la indulgentiam_fw-la additus_fw-la cyprian_n object_n but_o if_o faith_n be_v such_o a_o free_a gift_n why_o do_v not_o god_n give_v the_o same_o measure_n of_o faith_n unto_o all_o believer_n answ_n he_o may_v do_v what_o he_o will_v with_o his_o own_o he_o may_v give_v he_o the_o great_a measure_n of_o faith_n who_o deserve_v faith_n lest_o ephes_n 4.7_o unto_o every_o one_o of_o we_o be_v give_v faith_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o man_n that_o give_v measure_n of_o wheat_n free_o to_o beggar_n may_v give_v one_o more_o and_o another_o less_o without_o do_v any_o wrong_n so_o god_n may_v measure_v forth_o faith_n unto_o we_o large_o according_a to_o his_o own_o will_n without_o wrong_v those_o who_o have_v do_v more_o for_o he_o and_o receive_v less_o we_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o complain_v or_o murmur_v against_o god_n because_o he_o be_v abundant_o gracious_a to_o who_o he_o please_v but_o shall_v rather_o admire_v his_o free_a grace_n and_o see_v faith_n with_o every_o act_n and_o degree_n of_o it_o be_v a_o gift_n of_o unmerited_a grace_n let_v we_o who_o do_v believe_v wait_v for_o
the_o scripture_n by_o which_o error_n be_v hew_v down_o and_o truth_n exalt_v wherefore_o i_o shall_v give_v you_o more_o full_o my_o plain_a and_o naked_a meaning_n in_o this_o point_n and_o then_o shall_v show_v you_o what_o scripture_n will_v come_v in_o to_o bear_v witness_n to_o the_o truth_n which_o i_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o lord_n first_o we_o be_v to_o take_v notice_n that_o man_n in_o scripture_n be_v consider_v physical_o as_o he_o have_v a_o rational_a spirit_n join_v to_o a_o humane_a body_n and_o when_o we_o thus_o speak_v of_o man_n we_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o every_o man_n sin_v lot_n david_n peter_n paul_n and_o the_o like_a according_a to_o that_o of_o james_n jam._n 3.2_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o offend_v all_o second_o we_o may_v look_v upon_o man_n theological_o and_o if_o we_o thus_o consider_v he_o 〈◊〉_d shall_v find_v that_o in_o a_o spiritual_a sense_n every_o christian_a man_n have_v two_o man_n in_o he_o a_o new_a man_n and_z and_z a_o old_a man_n and_o these_o two_o of_o contrary_a nature_n and_o operation_n and_o as_o sometime_o we_o speak_v of_o a_o man_n as_o have_v two_o physical_a being_n in_o he_o and_o do_v attribute_n unto_o he_o what_o be_v proper_a to_o his_o corporal_a and_o spiritual_a part_n as_o when_o we_o say_v a_o man_n hear_v see_v walk_v understand_v and_o the_o like_a and_o then_o again_o do_v distinguish_v these_o two_o attribute_v to_o the_o body_n what_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o body_n and_o to_o the_o soul_n what_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o soul_n so_o sometime_o the_o scripture_n do_v speak_v of_o man_n as_o have_v two_o contrary_a nature_n and_o then_o do_v again_o attribute_v that_o to_o the_o new_a or_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v proper_a unto_o that_o and_o that_o unto_o the_o sinful_a and_o fleshly_a nature_n which_o be_v proper_a unto_o it_o in_o the_o old_a and_o unregenerate_v nature_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o sin_n and_o the_o seed_n and_o spawn_n of_o all_o filthiness_n and_o uncleanness_n and_o in_o the_o regenerate_v part_n or_o new_a man_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o purity_n and_o holiness_n in_o this_o nature_n he_o do_v not_o sin_n nor_o can_v sin_v as_o he_o can_v do_v good_a in_o the_o other_o nature_n so_o that_o i_o apprehend_v that_o the_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n be_v not_o sinful_a in_o his_o nature_n or_o in_o any_o of_o his_o act_n working_n or_o operation_n he_o be_v light_a in_o his_o understanding_n holy_a in_o his_o will_n pure_a in_o his_o thought_n sanctify_v in_o his_o affection_n it_o be_v well_o observe_v by_o bullinger_n that_o god_n do_v allude_v to_o the_o nature_n o●_n seed_n the_o nature_n of_o which_o be_v retain_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o spring_v out_o of_o it_o alludit_fw-la ad_fw-la seminis_fw-la naturam_fw-la quam_fw-la ea_fw-la referunt_fw-la quae_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la nascuntur_fw-la the_o seed_n be_v holy_a that_o which_o arise_v from_o it_o be_v likewise_o holy_a as_o our_o saviour_n do_v inform_v we_o john_n 3.6_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o theflesh_n be_v flesh_n and_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n i●_n spirit_n not_o that_o the_o newborn_a man_n be_v whole_o turn_v into_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n and_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o spirit_n as_o some_o delude_v and_o delude_a soiry_n have_v affirm_v but_o the_o abstract_n be_v take_v for_o the_o concrete_a which_o manner_n of_o speech_n be_v very_o frequent_a in_o scripture_n that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v say_v to_o be_v spirit_n because_o it_o be_v make_v spiritual_a by_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o it_o have_v acquaint_v you_o with_o my_o meaning_n and_o give_v you_o the_o spiritual_a interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n i_o shall_v draw_v the_o marrow_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o particular_n which_o i_o name_v into_o one_o conclusion_n which_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o make_v good_a by_o spiritual_a argument_n which_o i_o shall_v draw_v from_o scripture_n and_o spiritual_a reason_n the_o conclusion_n be_v this_o the_o spiritual_a man_n or_o the_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n in_o his_o spiritual_a and_o godly_a nature_n motion_n &_o act_n towards_o god_n in_o christ_n do_v not_o nor_o can_v sin_v arg._n 1._o his_o seed_n be_v holy_a in_o he_o therefore_o his_o fruit_n be_v holy_a this_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o apostle_n his_o seed_n abide_v in_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o can_v sin_v christ_n be_v the_o seed_n in_o we_o 1_o pet._n 1.23_o every_o true_a christian_a can_v say_v with_o paul_n gal._n 2.20_o that_o christ_n live_v in_o he_o and_o christ_n in_o we_o do_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o live_v sinful_o but_o make_v we_o to_o live_v holy_o he_o become_v the_o principle_n of_o a_o holy_a life_n and_o sanctification_n in_o we_o a_o christian_a be_v powerful_o act_v by_o a_o holy_a principle_n and_o therefore_o his_o act_n be_v holy_a christ_n be_v a_o pure_a fountain_n of_o holiness_n in_o we_o as_o well_o to_o fill_v our_o soul_n with_o the_o stream_n of_o holiness_n by_o the_o spirit_n as_o to_o wash_v away_o the_o uncleaness_n of_o our_o soul_n in_o our_o justification_n and_o this_o fountain_n can_v send_v forth_o at_o the_o same_o place_n sweet_a water_n and_o bitter_a jam._n 3.11_o the_o stream_n do_v retain_v the_o pure_a nature_n of_o the_o fountain_n from_o whence_o they_o flow_v reader_n i_o must_v inform_v thou_o that_o since_o i_o preach_v this_o sermon_n i_o receive_v objection_n from_o my_o learned_a friend_n mr._n r._n l._n against_o my_o argument_n which_o i_o think_v good_a to_o print_v with_o my_o argument_n ob._n against_o this_o argument_n this_o be_v object_v the_o argument_n from_o the_o seed_n to_o the_o fruit_n will_v not_o follow_v unless_o the_o soil_n be_v also_o answerable_a otherwise_o sorry_a fruit_n may_v come_v from_o good_a seed_n answ_n as_o there_o be_v good_a seed_n so_o there_o be_v a_o good_a soil_n the_o spiritual_a heart_n and_o therefore_o the_o argument_n will_v follow_v this_o i_o prove_v ezek._n 36.26_o a_o new_a heart_n will_v i_o give_v you_o and_o a_o new_a spirit_n will_v i_o put_v within_o you_o and_o i_o will_v take_v away_o the_o stony_a heart_n out_o of_o your_o flesh_n and_o will_v give_v you_o a_o heart_n of_o flesh_n and_o i_o will_v put_v my_o spirit_n within_o you_o and_o cause_v you_o to_o walk_v in_o my_o statute_n and_o you_o shall_v keep_v my_o judgement_n and_o do_v they_o the_o new_a heart_n of_o flesh_n be_v a_o good_a soil_n and_o because_o god_n do_v promise_v his_o spirit_n and_o a_o new_a heart_n therefore_o see_v what_o shall_v follow_v the_o good_a fruit_n speak_v of_o we_o shall_v keep_v his_o judgement_n and_o do_v they_o arg._n 2._o god_n can_v be_v the_o author_n &_o worker_n of_o that_o which_o be_v sin_n but_o god_n do_v profess_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o good_a work_n wrought_v in_o the_o saint_n and_o therefore_o these_o work_n be_v not_o sin_n isa_n 26.12_o the_o saint_n do_v profess_v that_o god_n have_v wrought_v all_o their_o work_n in_o they_o and_o this_o likewise_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o do_v prove_v that_o do_n of_o evil_a be_v sin_n because_o it_o be_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o that_o work_n of_o righteousness_n be_v good_a because_o it_o be_v of_o god_n object_n these_o thing_n be_v not_o sin_n in_o their_o whole_a moral_a nature_n but_o per_fw-la accidens_fw-la by_o accident_n through_o the_o defect_n of_o some_o circumstance_n answ_n every_o moral_a action_n command_v or_o forbid_v of_o god_n be_v either_o good_a or_o evil_a if_o these_o be_v good_a and_o no_o sin_n than_o i_o have_v what_o i_o contend_v for_o if_o evil_a acquit_v god_n from_o be_v the_o author_n of_o evil_a who_o do_v profess_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o these_o thing_n in_o opposition_n to_o satan_n and_o his_o work_n if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o be_v neither_o good_a nor_o evil_a or_o both_o good_a and_o evil_a and_o prove_v it_o by_o scripture_n i_o shall_v hearken_v unto_o you_o but_o you_o say_v they_o be_v sin_n by_o accident_n and_o if_o they_o be_v so_o by_o accident_n they_o be_v sin_n and_o still_o you_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n but_o i_o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v neither_o sin_n in_o their_o nature_n nor_o by_o accident_n but_o good_a and_o therefore_o until_o you_o prove_v what_o you_o say_v i_o do_v not_o see_v but_o that_o my_o argument_n be_v unshaken_a by_o this_o objection_n object_n 2._o faith_n and_o love_n in_o their_o whole_a moral_a abstract_n nature_n be_v not_o sin_n but_o consider_v in_o the_o concrete_a and_o act_v by_o we_o answ_n the_o apostle_n do_v speak_v of_o they_o in_o the_o concrete_a as_o act_v by_o we_o and_o do_v bid_v we_o try_v
ourselves_o by_o our_o faith_n love_n and_o work_v of_o righteousness_n and_o say_v vers_fw-la 19_o that_o hereby_o we_o assure_v ourselves_o before_o god_n therefore_o this_o distinction_n be_v of_o no_o validity_n in_o this_o place_n though_o some_o think_v that_o it_o will_v answer_v all_o our_o argument_n argu._n 3_o the_o old_a man_n and_o the_o new_a man_n be_v distinguish_v by_o their_o contrary_a nature_n and_o operation_n but_o if_o the_o new_a man_n be_v sinful_a and_o his_o operation_n sinful_a the_o new_a man_n will_v be_v confound_v with_o the_o old_a man_n who_o be_v sinful_a in_o himself_o and_o his_o operation_n but_o this_o be_v contrary_n to_o scripture_n the_o old_a man_n be_v corrupt_v according_a to_o deceitful_a lust_n but_o the_o new_a man_n after_o god_n be_v create_v in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n eph._n 4.22.24_o and_o speak_v of_o these_o in_o the_o concrete_a as_o in_o we_o eph._n 5.8_o 9_o he_o say_v to_o they_o you_o be_v sometime_o darkness_n but_o now_o be_v you_o light_v in_o the_o lord_n walk_v as_o child_n of_o the_o light_n for_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v in_o all_o goodness_n and_o righteousness_n and_o truth_n argu._n 4._o those_o work_n which_o be_v commend_v by_o jesus_n christ_n for_o good_a work_n be_v good_a work_n but_o the_o work_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v commend_v for_o good_a work_n therefore_o they_o be_v good_a revel_v 2.2_o our_o saviour_n say_v that_o he_o know_v the_o work_n of_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o his_o labour_n and_o patience_n that_o be_v he_o approve_v or_o commend_v his_o work_n and_o so_o rev._n 3.8_o it_o will_v be_v a_o disparagement_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o christ_n to_o commend_v sin_n or_o sinful_a work_n for_o good_a work_n and_o therefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v good_a work_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o the_o work_v which_o be_v wrought_v by_o a_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n be_v good_a work_n obj._n they_o be_v wash_v from_o their_o pollution_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb._n answ_n when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o new_a man_n and_o his_o work_n we_o look_v not_o upon_o he_o or_o his_o work_n but_o in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o thus_o he_o be_v wash_v from_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o work_n of_o god_n in_o we_o be_v well_o please_v unto_o god_n the_o worker_n through_o jesus_n christ_n through_o who_o he_o do_v work_v they_o in_o we_o arg._n 5._o christ_n do_v not_o present_a that_o which_o be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a to_o the_o father_n to_o be_v accept_v but_o he_o present_v our_o work_n 1_o pet._n 2.5_o we_o offer_v up_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n acceptable_a to_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n if_o christ_n do_v present_v any_o work_n that_o be_v sinful_a he_o may_v present_v our_o sinful_a work_n it_o be_v evident_a therefore_o that_o there_o be_v something_o which_o be_v good_a which_o be_v present_v as_o well_o as_o something_o in_o we_o which_o be_v sinful_a which_o be_v forgive_v malum_fw-la ex_fw-la quolibet_fw-la defectu_fw-la the_o less_o defect_n do_v make_v a_o thing_n evil_a and_o if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o defect_n in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o man_n who_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n to_o make_v it_o sin_n and_o evil_a what_o reason_n can_v any_o man_n give_v from_o scripture_n why_o every_o sin_n shall_v not_o be_v present_v and_o accept_v as_o well_o as_o those_o sin_n which_o they_o call_v good_a work_n arg._n 6._o the_o scripture_n call_v the_o work_n of_o the_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n neither_o sinful_a or_o sin_n but_o work_n of_o righteousness_n faith_n be_v call_v righteousness_n rom._n 4._o and_o rom._n 5._o &_o the_o last_o paul_n call_v the_o sincerity_n which_o be_v in_o he_o speak_v of_o it_o in_o the_o concrete_a godly_a sincerity_n 2_o cor._n 1.12_o paul_n pray_v that_o grace_n may_v be_v with_o all_o they_o who_o love_v the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o corruption_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v he_o pray_v for_o such_o who_o he_o think_v be_v not_o where_o to_o be_v find_v or_o for_o all_o true_a saint_n who_o he_o do_v know_v do_v love_v the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o incorruption_n reply_n if_o they_o be_v consider_v as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v so_o they_o be_v not_o evil_a but_o as_o they_o be_v do_v by_o we_o so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o call_v they_o menstruous_a rag_n even_o our_o very_a righteousness_n not_o our_o old_a man_n only_o isa_n 64.6_o answ_n the_o prophet_n do_v not_o speak_v here_o of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o a_o man_n underthe_a covenant_n of_o grace_n consider_v under_o that_o covenant_n for_o in_o the_o precedent_a verse_n he_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o such_o a_o man_n be_v not_o as_o a_o menstruous_a rag_n thou_o meet_v he_o that_o rejoy_v and_o work_v righteousness_n but_o he_o speak_v of_o man_n as_o look_v upon_o under_o the_o old_a covenant_n and_o of_o their_o work_n as_o do_v under_o and_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o that_o covenant_n which_o appear_v by_o the_o follow_a word_n our_o iniquity_n like_o the_o wind_n have_v take_v we_o away_o and_o there_o be_v none_o that_o call_v upon_o thy_o name_n that_o stir_v up_o himself_o to_o take_v hold_n of_o thou_o for_o thou_o have_v hide_v thy_o face_n from_o we_o and_o we_o be_v consume_v because_o of_o our_o iniquity_n we_o must_v not_o judge_v of_o this_o truth_n by_o expression_n which_o holy_a man_n have_v make_v use_n of_o in_o confess_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o jewish_a national_a covenant_n but_o by_o those_o passage_n of_o scripture_n in_o which_o god_n do_v speak_v of_o a_o man_n as_o under_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n with_o his_o work_n wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n 7_o arg._n god_n do_v remember_v the_o work_n of_o his_o saint_n heb._n 6.10_o god_n be_v not_o unrighteous_a to_o forget_v your_o work_n and_o labour_n of_o love_n say_v the_o apostle_n he_o will_v remember_v the_o good_a work_n of_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n the_o good_a work_n of_o some_o be_v manifest_a beforehand_o and_o they_o that_o be_v otherwise_o can_v be_v hide_v 1_o tim._n 5.15_o they_o can_v for_o ever_o be_v hide_v because_o god_n will_v make_v mention_n of_o they_o at_o that_o day_n but_o he_o have_v engage_v himself_o by_o oath_n to_o remember_v our_o sin_n and_o sinful_a action_n hebr._n 8._o and_o therefore_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spiritual_a man_n be_v not_o sin_n or_o sinful_a arg._n 8._o there_o be_v no_o law_n against_o the_o work_n of_o a_o spiritual_a man_n or_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o sin_n because_o where_o there_o be_v no_o law_n there_o be_v no_o transgression_n but_o there_o be_v no_o law_n against_o these_o this_o be_v plain_a by_o that_o passage_n of_o the_o apostle_n gal._n 5.22_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v love_n joy_n peace_n long-suffering_a gentleness_n goodness_n faith_n meekness_n temperance_n against_o such_o there_o be_v no_o law_n object_n they_o be_v here_o consider_v as_o they_o be_v precise_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v by_o we_o and_o so_o they_o be_v no_o sin_n but_o consider_v they_o as_o act_v by_o we_o even_o with_o the_o spirit_n assistance_n and_o so_o they_o be_v defective_a and_o sinful_a answ_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o tully_n of_o his_o orator_n plato_n of_o his_o commonwealth_n &_o moor_n of_o his_o utopia_n as_o of_o thing_n no_o where_n to_o be_v find_v but_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n as_o in_o we_o and_o the_o fruit_n of_o it_o as_o in_o we_o and_o do_v plain_o tell_v we_o that_o if_o we_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n we_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o law_n against_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n hereafter_o to_o speak_v more_o full_o of_o some_o place_n where_o the_o apostle_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n do_v speak_v plain_o of_o these_o work_v as_o do_v in_o we_o that_o so_o i_o may_v break_v the_o neck_n of_o this_o distinction_n which_o be_v make_v as_o a_o catholicon_n or_o salve_v for_o every_o sore_a arg._n 9_o god_n do_v give_v a_o testimony_n concern_v his_o saint_n that_o they_o be_v righteous_a and_o holy_a which_o be_v speak_v in_o reference_n to_o their_o spiritual_a nature_n and_o act_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v righteous_a and_o holy_a the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v according_a to_o truth_n he_o be_v the_o god_n of_o truth_n do_v not_o god_n give_v this_o
sanctification_n at_o the_o resurrection_n and_o yet_o you_o will_v not_o say_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v acquit_v from_o our_o sin_n by_o it_o which_o we_o have_v commit_v upon_o earth_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n 2._o we_o be_v justify_v before_o sanctification_n and_o therefore_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o it_o because_o that_o be_v do_v before_o the_o other_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o 3._o that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v justify_v by_o his_o sanctification_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v so_o whole_o sanctify_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o sin_n in_o the_o man_n our_o good_a work_n will_v not_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o our_o bad_a work_n a_o traitor_n for_o a_o act_n of_o treason_n may_v be_v condemn_v by_o his_o prince_n though_o he_o have_v do_v he_o much_o good_a service_n if_o a_o man_n will_v seek_v justification_n by_o the_o law_n who_o be_v sanctify_v in_o part_n the_o law_n will_v condemn_v he_o for_o his_o sin_n in_o his_o unregenerate_v part_n take_v no_o notice_n of_o any_o sufficiency_n in_o his_o sanctification_n to_o free_v he_o from_o condemnation_n for_o his_o sin_n in_o the_o unregenerate_v part_n arg._n 19_o this_o opinion_n that_o the_o good_a work_n of_o the_o justify_v man_n be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a do_v make_v divers_a place_n of_o scripture_n irreconcilable_a man_n shall_v never_o be_v well_o able_a to_o reconcile_v many_o place_n of_o scripture_n who_o swallow_v this_o as_o a_o truth_n that_o whatsoever_o work_n be_v now_o do_v in_o the_o saint_n be_v nothing_o but_o sin_n or_o sinful_a for_o instance_n in_o one_o place_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o disclaim_v our_o work_n and_o to_o account_v all_o our_o righteousness_n as_o filthy_a rag_n to_o believe_v in_o he_o that_o justifi_v the_o ungodly_a and_o in_o another_o place_n we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v redeem_v from_o all_o iniquity_n that_o we_o may_v be_v zealous_a of_o good_a work_n tit._n 2._o and_o we_o be_v the_o work-manship_a of_o god_n create_v in_o christ_n jesus_n to_o good_a work_n eph._n 2._o by_o what_o i_o have_v deliver_v they_o be_v easy_o reconcileable_a to_o wit_n by_o distinguish_v as_o the_o scripture_n do_v concern_v good_a work_n thus_o that_o all_o the_o work_n of_o man_n under_o the_o law_n be_v but_o splendid_a and_o shine_a sin_n and_o that_o the_o spiritual_a work_n of_o a_o spiritual_a man_n be_v good_a and_o not_o sin_n or_o sinful_a in_o their_o nature_n not_o that_o the_o scripture_n make_v these_o good_a work_n that_o flow_v from_o the_o spiritual_a man_n the_o cause_n or_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o justification_n but_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o consequent_n of_o our_o justification_n it_o be_v a_o speech_n of_o luther_n worthy_a to_o be_v write_v in_o letter_n of_o gold_n that_o the_o whole_a world_n with_o all_o the_o riches_n of_o it_o be_v of_o no_o worth_n in_o comparison_n of_o good_a work_n flow_v from_o faith_n and_o wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n which_o how_o it_o can_v be_v make_v good_a i_o know_v not_o if_o that_o be_v true_a which_o he_o and_o some_o other_o protestant_a writer_n affirm_v that_o omne_fw-la bonum_fw-la secundum_fw-la judicium_fw-la dei_fw-la est_fw-la mortale_fw-la peccatum_fw-la every_o good_a work_n of_o a_o regenerate_a man_n according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v a_o mortal_a sin_n that_o which_o be_v moral_o evil_a be_v not_o so_o good_a as_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o moral_o evil_a that_o be_v the_o great_a evil_n which_o be_v moral_o evil_a i_o have_v know_v some_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n who_o have_v fall_v to_o familisme_n and_o atheistical_a opinion_n and_o be_v ask_v why_o they_o do_v leave_v the_o gospel_n they_o have_v answer_v that_o they_o can_v never_o reconcile_v the_o scripture_n concern_v work_n to_o other_o place_n while_o they_o be_v professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n their_o meaning_n be_v while_o they_o be_v professor_n upon_o these_o principle_n by_o which_o they_o be_v teach_v to_o look_v upon_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o they_o as_o sin_n and_o sinful_a that_o which_o be_v frequent_o affert_v by_o some_o mr._n eatoon_n honycomb_n and_o other_o that_o they_o be_v good_a to_o men-ward_n will_v not_o make_v up_o the_o breach_n the_o apostle_n peter_n speak_v of_o a_o meek_a &_o quiet_a spirit_n which_o be_v the_o ornament_n of_o the_o hide_a man_n of_o the_o heart_n say_v that_o it_o be_v of_o great_a price_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n 1_o pet._n 3.4_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o his_o fincerity_n in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o bring_v it_o into_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n 2_o cor._n 2.17_o and_o john_n say_v 1_o joh._n 3.22_o that_o whatsoever_o we_o ask_v we_o receive_v of_o he_o because_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v please_v in_o his_o sight_n and_o that_o he_o do_v not_o mean_a believe_v only_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o next_o verse_n where_o he_o say_v that_o this_o be_v his_o commandment_n that_o we_o believe_v on_o the_o name_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o love_v one_o another_o and_o to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o objection_n which_o be_v usual_o bring_v against_o this_o truth_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o do_v as_o in_o god_n precept_n or_o command_v and_o not_o as_o do_v by_o we_o he_o say_v that_o we_o receive_v what_o we_o ask_v because_o we_o do_v what_o be_v please_v in_o his_o sight_n i_o must_v profess_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n that_o this_o distinction_n have_v give_v i_o a_o great_a light_n in_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o this_o i_o be_o inform_v that_o i_o be_o justify_v without_o holiness_n or_o sanctification_n and_o yet_o that_o without_o holiness_n no_o man_n shall_v see_v the_o lord_n heb._n 12.14_o arg._n 20._o this_o opinion_n that_o the_o good_a work_n of_o a_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a do_v overthrow_v the_o distinction_n which_o be_v warrant_v by_o many_o thousand_o place_n of_o scripture_n between_o good_a work_n and_o bad_a work_n and_o do_v draw_v a_o curse_n upon_o the_o doer_n of_o it_o can_v evil_a be_v good_a or_o good_a evil_n woe_n unto_o they_o that_o call_v evil_a good_a and_o good_a evil_n that_o put_v darkness_n for_o light_n and_o light_n for_o darkness_n that_o put_v bitter_a for_o sweet_a and_o sweet_a for_o bitter_a isa_n 5.20_o what_o else_o do_v they_o do_v who_o plainley_o aver_v that_o every_o good_a work_n be_v evil_a object_n do_v we_o deny_v the_o difference_n between_o white_a and_o black_a because_o we_o say_v that_o in_o most_o white_a body_n there_o be_v a_o mixture_n of_o some_o blackness_n with_o the_o whiteness_n etc._n etc._n answ_n if_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o mixture_n of_o that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o flesh_n that_o that_o which_o be_v spiritual_a shall_v be_v make_v fleshly_a by_o it_o there_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v some_o strength_n in_o this_o objection_n but_o until_o that_o such_o a_o mixture_n be_v prove_v by_o plain_a scripture_n we_o shall_v think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o affirm_v that_o such_o similitude_n which_o have_v not_o their_o foundation_n upon_o a_o principle_n of_o truth_n do_v prove_v nothing_o arg._n 21._o it_o take_v away_o the_o difference_n between_o a_o sanctify_a and_o unsanctified_a man_n which_o be_v a_o distinction_n which_o do_v stand_v firm_a upon_o the_o basis_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n the_o apostle_n do_v plain_o lay_v down_o this_o distinction_n 1_o cor._n 6.11_o where_o he_o inform_v we_o of_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o corinthian_n before_o conversion_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o be_v thief_n adulteress_n and_o the_o like_a such_o be_v some_o of_o you_o and_o then_o set_v forth_o their_o bless_a condition_n after_o conversion_n but_o you_o be_v wash_v but_o you_o be_v sanctify_v and_o do_v second_o this_o truth_n with_o his_o own_o experience_n acknowleding_n that_o there_o be_v a_o real_a change_n wrought_v in_o himself_o after_o conversion_n by_o sanctification_n 1_o tim._n 1._o i_o be_v say_v he_o a_o persecuter_n a_o blasphemer_n injurious_a but_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v exceed_v abundant_a with_o 〈…〉_o love_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n not_o with_o 〈…〉_o but_o love_v also_o if_o god_n have_v pull_v you_o out_o of_o the_o fire_n of_o sin_n and_o draw_v you_o as_o firebrand_n out_o of_o hell_n and_o bring_v you_o into_o the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o his_o son_n you_o be_v able_a to_o profess_v the_o same_o sanctify_a change_n in_o yourselves_o it_o be_v a_o dead_a
and_o sinful_a in_o himself_o and_o the_o new_a creation_n be_v a_o bless_a consequent_a of_o our_o redemption_n by_o christ_n but_o i_o have_v sufficient_o answer_v this_o before_o arg._n 13._o that_o which_o be_v not_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n agreeable_a to_o the_o holy_a law_n of_o god_n be_v not_o perfect_a and_o without_o sin_n for_o sin_n be_v the_o transgression_n or_o disagreement_n with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n 1_o john_n 3.4_o but_o the_o best_a of_o a_o regenerate_a man_n action_n be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v not_o do_v with_o all_o the_o heart_n with_o all_o the_o soul_n with_o all_o the_o understanding_n and_o with_o all_o the_o strength_n mat._n 22.37_o deut._n 6.5_o ans_fw-fr 1._o by_o this_o argument_n you_o will_v bring_v the_o spiritual_a man_n to_o judge_v himself_o by_o the_o law_n or_o old_a covenant_n but_o he_o be_v better_a teach_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o as_o he_o do_v not_o put_v his_o person_n under_o the_o old_a covenant_n so_o do_v he_o not_o judge_v his_o action_n by_o the_o old_a covenant_n but_o by_o the_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n gal._n 5.18_o if_o you_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n you_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n and_o thus_o look_v upon_o what_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n under_o the_o new_a covenant_n he_o see_v it_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n agreeable_a to_o the_o law_n as_o it_o be_v deliver_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n not_o that_o christ_n do_v require_v less_o holiness_n than_o be_v require_v in_o the_o old_a covenant_n but_o because_o he_o give_v we_o more_o grace_n enable_v we_o to_o keep_v his_o commandment_n by_o the_o keep_n of_o which_o we_o know_v in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o we_o true_o know_v he_o and_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n be_v keep_v by_o the_o saint_n evangelical_o two_o manner_n of_o way_n 1._o by_o believe_v for_o justification_n 2._o by_o holy_a walk_n for_o sanctification_n not_o that_o we_o can_v keep_v they_o by_o holy_a walk_n but_o as_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o thus_o he_o be_v as_o well_o able_a to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o love_n as_o the_o commandment_n of_o faith_n suppose_v a_o king_n shall_v pardon_v a_o traitor_n and_o shall_v give_v he_o a_o assurance_n of_o pardon_n for_o all_o future_a treason_n which_o he_o may_v run_v into_o and_o have_v power_n to_o enable_v he_o in_o some_o thing_n and_o sometime_o to_o be_v obedient_a unto_o he_o as_o a_o loyal_a subject_n will_v you_o not_o say_v that_o this_o subject_n be_v a_o loyal_a subject_n all_o his_o traitorous_a act_n forgive_v and_o his_o loyal_a obedience_n to_o the_o command_n of_o his_o sovereign_n be_v accept_v thus_o it_o be_v between_o god_n and_o we_o he_o forgive_v all_o the_o treason_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o accept_v of_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o spirit_n god_n do_v account_n that_o all_o the_o command_n of_o the_o law_n be_v fulfil_v by_o we_o when_o that_o which_o be_v not_o do_v be_v pardon_v omnia_fw-la tunc_fw-la facta_fw-la deputantur_fw-la cum_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la fit_a ignoscitur_fw-la which_o be_v true_a in_o a_o sense_n in_o reference_n to_o sanctification_n as_o well_o as_o to_o justification_n and_o a_o spiritual_a man_n thus_o look_v upon_o himself_o in_o the_o glass_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n do_v know_v that_o he_o be_v a_o keeper_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o can_v say_v with_o the_o psalmist_n ps_n 119.10_o with_o my_o whole_a heart_n i_o have_v seek_v thou_o o_o let_v i_o not_o wander_v from_o thy_o commandment_n all_o his_o defect_n and_o imperfection_n with_o the_o commit_n of_o evil_n and_o omit_v good_a in_o the_o flesh_n be_v do_v away_o and_o that_o which_o be_v good_a be_v account_v so_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v present_v unto_o he_o in_o this_o covenant_n so_o speak_v you_o and_o so_o do_v as_o they_o that_o shall_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o law_n of_o liberty_n say_v james_n jam._n 2.12_o as_o god_n do_v judge_v our_o person_n by_o the_o law_n of_o liberty_n or_o the_o law_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n so_o he_o do_v judge_n our_o action_n and_o thus_o they_o be_v perfect_a and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n be_v not_o only_a faith_n for_o justification_n but_o love_n for_o sanctification_n and_o thus_o this_o place_n be_v expound_v by_o the_o learned_a paraeus_n arg._n 14._o paul_n do_v not_o think_v himself_o to_o have_v full_o apprehend_v or_o to_o be_v already_o perfect_a but_o strive_v forward_o phil._n 3.12_o 13._o which_o can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o old_a man_n but_o only_o of_o the_o new_a man_n for_o the_o old_a man_n do_v not_o strive_v forward_o for_o the_o prize_n of_o the_o high_a call_n answ_n though_o paul_n have_v not_o attain_v to_o that_o perfection_n which_o he_o look_v for_o at_o the_o resurrection_n yet_o he_o have_v attain_v to_o a_o perfection_n of_o part_n which_o be_v oppose_v to_o sinfulness_n which_o do_v appear_v by_o what_o follow_v in_o the_o 15._o vers_fw-la of_o the_o same_o chap._n where_o he_o do_v acknowledge_v the_o saint_n in_o this_o sense_n to_o be_v perfect_a with_o which_o verse_n i_o shall_v put_v a_o period_n to_o my_o answer_n to_o your_o objection_n as_o many_o as_o be_v perfect_a be_v thus_o mind_v &_o if_o in_o any_o thing_n you_o be_v otherwise_o mind_v god_n shall_v reveal_v even_o this_o unto_o you_o use_v 2._o the_o lesson_n which_o god_n have_v teach_v i_o from_o these_o meditation_n have_v be_v very_o powerful_a by_o his_o grace_n for_o the_o convince_a 〈◊〉_d of_o sin_n in_o a_o gospel-way_n and_o for_o the_o humble_v of_o my_o soul_n under_o his_o mighty_a hand_n by_o see_v the_o huge_a mass_n of_o corruption_n which_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n &_o that_o little_a quantity_n of_o pure_a gold_n which_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n it_o be_v the_o speech_n of_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_n that_o grace_n in_o some_o saint_n be_v like_o a_o spark_n in_o the_o ocean_n and_o thus_o i_o have_v apprehend_v it_o in_o myself_o yet_o i_o see_v that_o as_o it_o be_v wrought_v by_o grace_n so_o it_o be_v accept_v by_o grace_n be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n as_o deliver_v in_o the_o first_o covenant_n and_o yet_o not_o without_o the_o law_n to_o god_n but_o under_o the_o law_n to_o christ_n 1_o cor._n 9.21_o and_o this_o have_v be_v a_o strong_a motive_n unto_o i_o to_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o the_o righteousness_n of_o sanctification_n command_v and_o promise_v in_o the_o new_a covenant_n which_o do_v comfort_v i_o with_o a_o assurance_n and_o confidence_n that_o that_o which_o be_v perfect_v here_o in_o part_n inchoative_o shall_v be_v perfect_v in_o degree_n consummative_o i_o can_v say_v with_o david_n psal_n 138.8_o the_o lord_n will_v perfect_v that_o which_o concern_v i_o he_o will_v not_o forsake_v the_o work_n of_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o see_v the_o strength_n and_o power_n of_o the_o flesh_n in_o i_o i_o be_o carry_v up_o in_o spirit_n to_o admire_v and_o wonder_v at_o god_n omnipotent_a grace_n by_o which_o through_o faith_n which_o work_v by_o love_n i_o be_o preserve_v together_o with_o all_o saint_n unto_o the_o day_n of_o salvation_n in_o christ_n jesus_n who_o be_v over_o all_o rom._n 9.5_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o amen_n finis_fw-la